■■'^Wfe- ; ■■^• THE STORY OF OUR COLONIES. • * ^- "..* m- ^ . -* # .^ THE STORY OF OUR COLONIES: WITH ' . '* .* SKETCHES OF THEIR PRESENT CONDITION. BY H. R FOX BOURNE, AUTHOR OF "EXOLISH SEAMEN UNDER THE TUD0R3," " FAMOUS LONDON MERcnANTS/ KXa, ETa LONDON: JAMES HOGG k SOX, YORK STREET, COVERT GARDEM. MDCCCLXTX. ALL niGnrs reserved. /oxsy EDINBURGH : COMMEUCIAT, PRINTING COMPANY, 22 HOWE STREET. % » -*m TO THE lUGIlT HONOURABLE EARL GRANVILLE, K. G. HFB MAJESn's PRINCIPAL SECRETAny OF ETArE FOR THE COLONIAL DEPARTMENT, '*' THIS VOLUME, BY HIS L mDSniP'S PERMISSION, IS RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED. " ■#' PREFACE. Perhaps tlie title of tlhis book sufficiently explains its purport. Of the history of the British posses- sions — a theme large enough for several volumes — it does not pretend to give a complete account, or even a comprehensive epitome. If it succeed in showing what were the virtues and the vices, the designs and the accidents, which led to the formation and de- velopment of our Colonial Empire, what are its present value and prospective importance, and how these may be increased by proper cultivation of the emigration-fields that are open to our over-crowded country, its object will be attained. H. E. F. B. London, October 1860. CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. PAOI Introduction — The Cathayan FaWes — Discovery of America by John Cabot— His " New-found-lancls "— The First Efforts of tlie English in Colonizing America. — Sir Humphrey Gilbert and Sir Walter Raleigh — The Rise of English Colonization — The Establishment of the United States— England's other Colonies. [1490-1776.] 1 CHAPTER n. OUR FlllST \VE.ST INDIAN COLONY. The First English Settlements in the West Indies — The Exploits of Sir John Hawkins and his Successors — The Colonization and Early History of Barbados — lord Willougliby of Parham — The Civil War in Barbados — Lord Willougliby and Sir George Ayscue — The Progress of the Island during the Seventeenth Century — Its Trade and Population — The Slaves and their Sufferings. [1562-17001 15 CHAPTER m. JAMAICA AND THE BUCCANEEKS. Columbus in Jamaica — Its Government by the Spaniards — Cromwell's Conquest — The Maroons — The Buccaneers — The Exi)loits of Sir Henry Morgan — The Connection of Jamaica with the Buccaneers — Its Early Progress — The Earthquake of 1692, and Subsequent Disasters. [1605-1694.] -29 vm CONTENTS. CHAPTER IV. * JAMAICA AND SLAVERY. PAGB The Progress of Jamaica — Its Value to England — Slavery — The Slave Insurrections — The Rising of 1760 — The Con- dition of the Slaves — The Insurrection of 1832 — The Abolition of Slavery in 1834. [ltJ94-1834.] ... 43 CHAPTER V. OTJR -WEST INDIAN POSSESSIONS. The Bermudas — The Bahamas — Other West Indian Islandfj — British Guiana — Trinidad — Barbados — Jamaica- The Present Condition of our "West Indian Colonies — The Causes of their Deterioration and the Means of their Improvement. [1593-1869.] 63 CH.VPTER VL NEWFOUNDLAND. Tlie Beginning of the Newfouindland Fisheries — The Growth of Newfoundland as a Colony — English Neglect of it — The Fishers and the Colonists — Its Troubles during War with France — Its Subsequent Development — Seal- Hunting and Cod-Fishing. [1497-1867.] ... 68 CHAPTER VH. FRENCH NORTH AMERICA. The French in North America — The Colony of New France — Samuel Champlain — The Progress of the Colony — Wars with the Indians and the English — The Contests be- tween the English and French Colonists — The English Conquests of Nova Scotia, Cape Breton, and Canada. [1524-1760.] 81 CHAPTER vm. i NOVA SCOTIA AND NEW BRUNSWICK. The French Settlers in Nova Scotia — Their Banishment in 17.55 — Progress of Nova Scotia, Cape Breton, and New Brunswick under the English — A Fire in New Brunswick - -Prince Edward's Island. [1755-1861.] ... 97 COXTEXTS. IX # CHAPTER IX. CANADA. TAOB The History of Canada under British Rule — ITie First Ame- rican War — Internal Troubles — The French and English Canadians — Tlie Second American War — Fresh Domestic Difficulties— The Rebellions of 1837 and 1838— Lord Durham's Services to the Colony — Its Later History —The Canadian Confederation. [1760-1867.] . . 106 CHAPTER X. THE Hudson's bay tekkitort. The Hudson's Bay Company and its Territory — Rivalry in the Eighteenth Century — The Character and Working of the Company — Its Servants and Subjects — The Red River Settlement — Vancouver Island and British Colum- bia — Dissolution of the Hudson's Bay Company. [1670- 18G8.] 128 CHAPTER XI. BEITISU NORTH AMERICA. A General View of the British North Anierioan Colonies — Prince Edward's Island — Cape Breton — Nova Scotia- New Brunswick — Canada — The Western Territories — British Columbia and Vancouver Island. [1869.] . 139 CHAPTER XIL WEST AFRICA. Tlie West African Settlements — Sierra Leone — Gambia — Cape Coast Castle— Lagos. [1600-1869.] 153 CHAPTER XIIL CAPE COLONY. ':• The Dutch Settlement on the Cape of Good Hope — Early Quarrels with the Hottentots and Cruel Treatment, of them — Transfer of the Colon3^ to England — Its Progress under British Rule — The Kaf!ir Wars and Other Troubles — The Present Constitution of the Colony — Its Natural Advantages. [1648-1869.] 156 jj CONTEXTS. CHAPTER XIV. ■ * NATAL. PAOK The Eafiirs — First English Visits to the Eastern Coast of South Africa — The Settlement of Port Natal — Its Early Troubles and Later Progress — The Present Condition and Resources of the Colony. [16S3-1889.] . . .176 CHAPTER XV. BRITISH INDIA. The Progress of British Trade and Conquest in India —Its Present Condition. [lCOO-1860.] 184 CHAPTER XVI. OUR ASIATIC COLONIES. Ceylon — Its Early Civilization — Its Subjection to the Portu- guese, the Dutch, and the English — Its Present Condi- tion — The Straits Settlements : Penang, Malacca, and Singapore — Hong Kong — Borneo and Labuan — The Achievements of Sir James Brooke. [1795-1869.] . . 187 CHAPTER XVII. EARLY AUSTRALASIAN DISCOVERIES. Portuguese and Dutch Discoveries of Australia — Tasman — English Voyagers — Danipier in Australia — Captain Cook in New Zealand and Australia — French Expeditions. [lC01-178t«.] 198 CHAPTER XVIII. THE FIRST AUSTRALIAN COLONY. The Convict Settlement in New South Wales — Its First Troubles— The Evil Habits of the Colonists— The Begin- ning of Better Ways — Governor Macquarie — Australian ' Discoverers: Flinders and Bass — Inland Expeditions — The Progress of New South Wales. [J 787-1821.] . . 208 /^ CONTENTS. U m CHAPTER XIX. OLD NEW SOUTH WALES. PAOE Progress of New South Wales as a Free Colony— Services of Reformed Convicts — John Macarthur and the Wool- Trade — Sydney in 1829 — Cruel Treatment of the Con- victs — Growth of Free Institutions — Sir Richard Boarke — Development of the Colony — Explorations in the Interior— The Aborigines of Australia. [1821-1839.] 219 CHAPTER XX. TASMANIA. The Offshoots of ITew South Wales— The Early History of Tasmania, or Van Dieman's Land — Its Establishment as an Independent Colony — Its Convicts and Bush-Rangers — Extermination of the Aborigines — Its Best Governors : Sir George Arthur and Sir John Franklin — Its Greatest Prosperity — Its Deterioration and Present State. [1797-1869.] 233 CHAPTER XXI. NEW SOUTH WALEJ AND THE PORT PHILLIP DISTRICT. The Discovery of Port Phillip — Captain Collins's Attempted Settlement on its Coast — Later Enterprises — Henty, Bat- man, Fawkner, and Mitchell — Buckley's Adventures among the Aborigines — Establishment of the Port Phillip Settlement — The Progress of New South Wales - - The ' Squatters and their Work — Melbourne between 1838 and 1850~Sydney in 1848. [1802-1851.] . . 243 CHAPTER XXn. SOUTH AUSTRALIA. The Discovery and Colonization of South Australia — The Wakefield Scheme and its Failure — Early Troubles of the Colony — Their Speedy Removal — The Copper Mines — The Effect of the Gold Discoveries in Victoria — Later Progress of the Colony ; Copper, Wool, Wheat, and Wine —Its Present Condition. [1822-1869.] . . . .260 XU CONTENTS. CHAPTER XXIII. VICTORIA. PAQS The Establishment of Port Phillip as an Independent Colony, under the Name of Victoria — The Australian Gold Dis- coveries — The Ballarat Gold-Fields — The Consequences of the Discoveiy — The Progress of Victoria — Melbourne in 18C6 — The Ballarat Outbreak — Political Chanjes in Vic- toria. [1851-1869.] 276 CHAPTER XXIV. NEW SOUTH WALES AND QtTEtNSLAXD. The Later Progress of New South Wales — Its Gold-Fields and their Fruit — Squatter-Extensions — The Rise of the More- ton Bay District, and the O^iening up of Central Aus- tralia — The Fertility of this Region — Establishment of the Colony of Queensland — Its Rapid Growth — The Pre- sent Condition of New South Wales — Its Coal-Fields. [1851-1869.] 289 CHAPTER XXV. WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. Origin of the Swan River Settlement, or Western Australia — Early Misfortunes of the Colony — Its Present Condition — Explorations in the Interior of the Australian Continent — The First Discoverers — Sturt, Murray, Eyi-e, Leich- hardt — Sturt again — Stuart — Burke and Wills — The Character of the Interior. [1827-1865.] . . .299 CHAPTER XXVI. TAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. The New Zealand Islands and their Inhabitants — First Inter- course with Englishmen— The Massacre of the Crew and Passengers of the Boyd in 1809 — The Missionaries and their Work — The Pakeha Traders — Articles of Trade — Traffic in Human Heads — Other Debasing Employments of the Pakehas — Progress of English Iniluences — Spread of Civilization— The Character of the Maoris. [1809-1839.] 323 CONTEXTS. xm CHAPTER XXVn. NEW ZEALAND COLONIZATION. VA1K The Old Pakeha Population — The New Zealand Company — Establishment of British Sovereignty in New Zealand, and its Construction as a Regular Colony — Its Progress — Land- Quarrels with the Natives — Their Attempted Pro- tection by the Government — The Influence of the Mis- sionaries—Later Growth of the Colony. [1830-1867.] • . 338 CHAPTER xxvm. NEW ZEALAND WARFARE. The Eival Races in New Zealand— The Maori Wars of 1843 and the Following Years — The Subsequent Condition of the Maoris — Their Civilization — Their Numbers — The Renewal of Hostilities — The King-Movement and its Issue— Hostilities in 18G0 and 1861— The War of 1863- 1865 — Nature of the Strife — Later Guerilla Warfare — The Pai-Marire, or Hau-Hau Superstition — The Future of New Zealand. [1843-1869.] 348 CHAPTER XXIX. ENGLISH AUSTRALASIA. The Relative Advantages of our Australasian Colonies — Wes- tern Australia — Queensland — New South Wales — Vic- toria — South Australia — Tasmania — New Zealand . .364 CHAPTER XXX. THE END OF THE STORY. The Value of our Colonies — The Political and Commercial Advantages Derived and Derivable from them — Their Importance as Fields of Emigration .... 368 XIV CONTENTS. APPENDIX. PAGE I. Area and Population of the British Colonial Possessions, . 381 II. Our Emigration Fields: — Iridia — Canada — New Bruns- wick — Nova Scotia — Newfoundland — British Columbia and Vancouver Island — Cape Colony — Natal — Queens- land — Victoria — New South Wales — South Australia — Tasmania — New Zealand — Table of Colonial Public Lands Alienated and remaining for Alienation at the Date of the last Returns — Summary of Modes of Sale, and Prices, in the principal Land-Selling Colonies — Price of Food and Rates of Wages in the principal Colonies, . 382 III. Our Colonial Gold-Field^ 39.'> Index, 401 THE STORY OF OUR COLONIES. CHAPTEE I. OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. INTRODUCTION— THE CATHATAN FABLES — DISCOVEIIY OF AMERICA BY JOHN CABOT — HIS " NEW -FOUND -LANDS " — THE FIRST EFFORTS OF THE ENGLISH IN COLONIZING AMERICA — SIR HUMPHREY GILBERT AND SIR WALTER RALEIGH — THE RISE OF ENGLISH COLONIZATION — THE ESTABLISHMENT OF TUB UNITED STATES — ENGLAND'S OTHER COLONIES. [1490-1776.] ^OR the last seven years tlie people of Bristol have sent out every year two, three, or four light ships in search of the island of Brazil and the Seven Cities." So wrote the Spanish ambassador in London to his sovereigns, Ferdinand and Isabella, in 1498 ; and in his brief, bald sentence there is echo of a whole volume of romance. The island of Brazil — the island of the Seven Cities ; these were themes of eager talk and bold speculation throughout Europe four hundred years ago, when Europe comprised nearly all the known world of civilization. A few daring travellers, most of them friars, among whom Marco Polo was chiefly famous, had in previous centuries gone into the far -iJ 2 OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. east, there to hear marvellous tales of places and people supposed to exist yet farther east. Cathay, the modern China, and the Japanese and other islands heyond it — then ' ^owa by a score of differ- ent names, like the Seven Citie? and Brazil, or the " place of red dye " — were the subjects of countless fables. Vast palaces of solid gold ; pearls and pre- cious stones ; spices and dyes, such as no gold in Europe could buy ; horses with six legs a-piece, and two-headed ostriches; giants twenty feet high, and dwarfs not two spans long ; fountains of perpetual youth, and trees bearing fruit of heavenly wisdom : these and a thousand other priceless treasures were said to be found in those shadowy regions ; and as the travellers' tales were repeated with ever fresh exaggerations, the adventurous youth of Christendom yearned more and more to make them their own. But barren deserts peopled by savage races, and vast tracts of lands which, in the old-fashioned ways of travelling, it took years to cross, were between the world of civilization and this fabled world of some- thing better than civilization ; and therefore few attempted, and none thoroughly achieved, the enter- prise, until wise men remembered the speculation of the ancients, that the earth was a round globe instead of a flat surface, and considered that Cathay and Brazil could be reached much more easily by ships sailing out into the west, than by eastward travelling on land. The first who put that speculation to effective proof, as all the world knows, was Christopher Columbus. But while he was urging his bold pro- ject upon Ferdinand and Isabella of Spain, and THE MERCHANTS OF BRISTOL. 8 before the good queen had pawned her jewels in order that he might set out up a his famous voyage to the West Indies in 1492, other brave men were turning their thoughts, and actually ventuiiiig on the sea, in the same direction. "While we take from Columbus none of the great honour that is hia due, we must render honour as great to certain merchants of Bristol, whose wonderful exploits have hardly been recorded, and whose names even have almost passed out of memory. Four hundred years ago Bristol was, with the exception of London, the busiest and most prosperous trading town in England. In pursuit of their calling, its merchants guided their little vessels to every known haunt of commerce, and to some which they alone frequented. With Iceland and the most north- ern parts of Europe they traded, and their traffic also took them down to the rich cities of the Medi- terranean, and the pirate-troubled shores of the Levant. It is very likely that in Iceland they heard of the early expeditions of Scandinavian voyagers to the coasts of Labrador, which are supposed to have influenced Columbus in his adventurous schemes. It is certain that in Venice, Genoa, and other Italian towns, they heard of the Cathay an fables, and the supposed marvels of the island of Brazil and the Seven Cities. And, as is shown by the sentence with which our story opens, they were the first who actually sailed out to the west in search of those marvels. But of their doings unfortunately very little is recorded. All that we know of what seems to have been their first enterprise is told in two sentences of 4 OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. a contemporary narrative. In 1490,^ it is there said, " a ship of John Jay, the younger, of 800 tons, and another, began their voyage from the King's-road, Bristol, to the island of Brazil, ploughing their way through the sea to the west of Ireland ; and Thlyde, the most scientific mariner in all England, was the pilot of the ships. News came to Bristol that the said ships sailed about the sea during nine months, and did not find the island, but, driven by tempests, they returned to a port on the coast of Ireland, for the repose of themselves and their mariners." The Bristol merchants were not discouraged by that failure ; but of their further exploits in the ensuing years, until 1497, we have no details at all. AU we know is that, in spite of failure, they tried again and again, and thus prepared the way for the success of others. The success was first achieved by Englishmen, under the leadership of John Cabot, a Venetian by birth, who had settled as a merchant in Bristol, and who, if he was not himself partly the cause of it, was an eager follower of the project in which John Jay, the yoimger, first adventured. Therein he was mainly encouraged by the recent discoveries of Christopher Columbus, " whereof," as Cabot's son Sebastian after- wards said, " was great talk in all the Court of King Henry the Seventh, insomuch that all men, with great admiration, affirmed it to be a thing more divine than human to sail by the west into the east, by a way that was never known before." From King Henry, ^ The date given in the manuscript is 1480, but this is evidently an error. The year 1490 coincides with the Spanish ambassador s atatement. JOIIX CABOT S EXPEDITIOIT. ' 5 Cabot, in 1490, obtained permission to go out on a more systematic voyage of discovery tlian English- men had yet attempted, and this he did, with very memorable results, in 1497. "With his expedition begins the history of English colonization. " In two stout ships, manned by three hundred of the ablest mariners that he could find," it has been said, " John Cabot sailed out of Bristol waters, near the beginning of !May. He went first to Iceland, and sailing thence almost due west reached the district now known as Labrador, but called by him and his successors New-found-land, on the 24th of June 1497. It was at five o'clock in the morning that, from the prow of his ship, the Matthew, Cabot first saw the mainland of America, just a year before Columbus, passing the West Indian Islands among which his two earlier voyages had been spent, first set eyes on the continent. No counterpart to the tropical beauty, and wealth of gold and pearls and precious stones, which rewarded Columbus and his comrades for their daring enterprise, Avas seen by Cabot and his hardy followers. Instead, they found a bleak and rocky country, on which very few trees appeared to them to grow, and of which bears and white antelopes seemed to be the chief inhabitants. Some groups of men and women they saw, all clothed alike in the skins of beasts, and with little other furniture than the bows and arrows, pikes, darts, wooden clubs, and slings which helped them in their frequent quarrels with one another. Black hawks, black partridges, and black eagles, as they reported, were all the birds that they could find ; and the place would have seemed to them altogether inhospitable 6 OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. but for its wonderful supply of cod and other fisli."^ Cabot discoverea not only the part of the American continent whicli he called New-found-land, but also the island now known by that name. Then he sailed northward, hoping thus to reach the fabled region of Cathay, for which these baiTcn districts offered him but a poor substitute. He was driven back, however, by snow and fogs and icebergs, which so frightened his sailors that they refused to proceed farther ; and he was in Bristol again early in August. Cathay was never reached by John Cabot, nor by any of his brave comrades and successors ; but out of this first voyage to America issued its colonization by Englishmen, who have turned the desolate regions into a source of wealth almost rivalling that de- scribed in the Cathayan fables. For several years after 1497 visits were paid by the Bristol merchants and their messengers to Labrador and its neighbour- hood. A few of them settled there, and established a rude traffic with the natives, sending home such rarities as they could find. In 1505 Henry the Seventh paid 13s. 4d. for " wild cats and popinjays of the New-found-islands," conveyed to his palace at Eichniond. Other importations were of kindred sort. Even at this early period Englishmen began to see the use of those abundant supplies of cod and other fish, which Cabot regarded as the only welcome pro- duct of the Newfoundland district, and which later adventurers have found to be a constant source of wealth. Fishing expeditions began at a very early date, and became more and more numerous and profitable in every succeeding generation. In 1578, 1 Bourne, " English Seamen under the Tudors," vol. i. pp. 32, 33. V GILBERT AND RALEIGH. 7 eighty years after Cabot's fust voyage, the English * fishing fleet so employed comprised fifty sail, and * contributed greatly to the prosperity of Bristol and • the other towns engaged in tlie trade. Neither then nor for long after, however, was - . Newfoundland or any adjoining district colonized by the English. One memorable attempt in that direction was made by Sir Humphrey Gilbert in 1583. Tour ships, laden with followers intended to establish a settlement on the island, were guided by him to Saint John's Harbour ; but his colonists proved mutinous, and he was unable to bring them into subjection. He had hardly spent a fortnight in his new home when he found it necessary to turn back towards England, and on his way thither he perished by shipwreck. His project died with him. Failure also attended the colonizing efforts of Gilbert's famous half-brother. Sir Walter Ealeigh. Ealeigh sought to build up another England in America, and though his own work was unsuc- cessful, he must ever be honoured as one of the founders of the great Anglo-Saxon commonwealth on the other side of the Atlantic. Having in 1584 obtained from Queen Elizabeth a charter as suc- cessor to Sir Humphrey Gilbert, he organized several expeditions to the coast of what is now the state of North Carolina, called by him Virginia, and there a colciy was established under the governorship of Ealph Lane. A hundred Englishmen went out in 1585, to spend a year in rude attempts to make for themselves a home, and in cruel treatment of the Indian natives whom they reduced to slaveiy, and to be themselves so harshly used by these Indians ■ 8 OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. that they were glad on the first opportunity to return to England. In 1587, a second party of colo- nists, a hundred and fifty in number, with Captain John White for their leader, went to take their place. But they were even more unfortunate than their predecessors. Abandoned by their friends at home, all were killed by the natives, except a few who wandered inland and gave up their English habits to share the life of the red men who afforded them shelter. The disastrous issue of Gilbert's and Ealeigh's projects, however, offered no serious obstacles to the progress of English colonization. These were only the first pulsations in a movement which was to result in a wonderful extension of English power and influence, and to effect a social revolution to which modern history presents no parallel. England was behind -hand in the planting of colonies. Spain had begun a century before to take possession of the most attractive portions of the vast American continent. Portugal, Germany, and France had followed the example before anything of importance was done by England. But at length she entered on the work with unrivalled energy, an energy that has had no abatement down to the present day. The early delay and the subsequent eagerness resulted from the same cause. During the sixteenth century England was too bus/ with her internal affairs and with European politics to enter upon any sustained work in distant quarters. Pro- testantism, taking deeper root and having healthier growth in our little island than almost in any other state, had a hard battle to fight both at home and ENGLAND'S WAR WITH SPAIN. 9 abroad. Its first great work was in overthrowing the old system of feudalism which, strengthened in past centuries by Catholicism, was now its main source of strength, and in building up those founda- tions of religious freedom which have become the bases of the political, and, in a measure, the social freedom that have made England a great and powerful nation. That work induced an appar- ently overwhelming force of opposition from the far greater powers of France and Spain, which, not con- tent with open warfare, sought to gain their end by fostering internal dissension and stirring up hatred and rebellion among the classes who, on religious or other grounds, were most in sympathy with the great Catholic nations. "Warfare, open and secret, was the grand business of Englishmen during the long reign of Queen Elizabeth. The men wlio, in other cir- cumstances, would have become great leaders of colonization, with Sir Francis Drake for their most illustrious representative, expended all their wit and strength in resistance of the great enemies of their country. But that resistance, wholly patriotic, though it was not in all respects praise- worthy, was in the end very helpful to the progress of colonization. Drake and his fellows, urged thereto by their opposition to Spain, swept the seas, both near and distant, that were traversed by the ships laden with the fruits of the Spanish colonies. They became the terror of the European coasts. Their pirate-ships also scoured the West Indian waters, and even made their way to the more distant haunts of Spanish commerce on the Pacific shores of America and in the Indian archipelago. Thus 10 OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. English seamen learnt to ply tlieir craft with im- matched daring, and, when the proper time arrived, to plant their colonies in the most favoured quarters of the world, and in other quarters, less favoured by nature, which were made propitious by the wisdom and the perseverance of the colonists themselves. Concerning the first great outcomes of this com- mercial and colonizing spirit this volume has not to treat in detail. The wonderful history of the East India Company, started near the end of Queen Elizabeth's reign, by which, in the course of two centuries and a half, our vast Indian empire has been established, is rather a history of trade and conquest than of colonization, and to it brief inci- dental reference in a future page will suffice. The no less wonderful history of the great colonial work in which Englishmen were engaged in America during the seventeenth century — a theme so wide and eventful that more than a volume would be needed for its separate handling — is precluded from our plan, because the colonies thus founded, no longer British possessions, have become them- selves a powerful nation as the United States of America.^ A few paragraphs, therefore, will serve for summing up aU that here needs to be told con- cerning them. The work, begun with Ealeigli's luckless experi- ments, was first successfully entered upon by two companies of "knights, gentlemen, and merchants" * Another reason for not recounting this story is that it has heen so often told before. An especially concise and interesting account of it will be found in pp. 180-384 of Miss Elizabeth Cooper's " Popular History of America." THE SETTLEMENTS IN AMERICA. 11 — ^the one party belonging to London, the other to the west of England — to whom jointly a charter for the colonization of America, under Ealeigh's name of Virginia, was granted by James I. in 1606. Three small ships full of emigrants left England for that purpose near the end of the year, and the difficult task of planting the little colony was achieved by Captain John Smith, whose tact in making friends with the Indians by help of the native king Pow- hatan and his daughter Pocahontas, has been often described in history and romance. The settlement was steadily recruited by fresh arrivals from England, and directed with tolerable success by later governors, who followed to some extent in the course marked out by Smith. Its first important trade was in tobacco, which, sold in Europe, enabled the colonists to supply themselves with all needful commodities from the mother country. A great resort of cavaliers and their dependants during the times of civil war and Commonwealth rule in England, it became the most aristocratic of the American settlements, the centre of agriculture and slavery. On the northern part of the district originally assigned to Virginia was founded the colony of Maryland, so named in honour of Queen Henrietta Maria, in 1632, with Lord Baltimore for its origina- tor. Designed by him as a settlement especially for fugitive Catholics, it soon fell into the hands of per- secuting Protestants, yet under them attained great prosperity. Still more prosperous were the colonies founded and developed during the same period by the Puri- tans. " The land is weary of her inhabitants," said 12 OUR EAKLIEST COLONIES. the Pilgi-im Fathers wlio quitted England in the Mayflower in 1G20, " so that man which is the most precious of all creatures is here more vile and base than the earth we tread upon ; so as children, neigh- bours, and friends, especially the poor, are accounted the greatest burthens, Avhich, if things were right, would be the highest earthly blessings. Hence it comes to pass that all arts and trades are carried on in that deceitful manner and unrighteous course as it is almost impossible for a good, up.ight man to maintain his charge in any of them." Driven thus from old England, they set up their new England on the western shores of the Atlantic, and, as tide after tide of emigrants crossed the ocean, one city after another Avas founded, until in 1643 there were four goodly groups of settlements, known as Plymouth, Massachusetts, Connecticut, and Newhaven, which organized themselves as the United Colonies of New England, the first germ of the United "States. The Puritan plantations grew mightily. But Milton has said that "new Presbyter is but old Priest writ large," and so it proved with the champions of reli- gious freedom in the New World. The liberty which they claimed for themselves was denied to all who differed from them, and persecution was as rife in America as in England. One great benefit, however, sprang therefrom. Not only did fresh streams of emigration flow from England, but hardly- used members of the established colonies branched off to establish younger colonies for themselves; and thus the entire coast-line was rapidly peopled with enterprising settlers, Avho, seeking their own wealth and comfort, tm'ned the whole region, from THE UNITED STATES OF AlIERICA. 13 Maine down to Georgia, into a scene of unrivalled wealth and comfort. When in 1776 the thirteen colonial states in America resolved to throw off tlieir allegiance to Great Britain, their population comprised about two million white men, and nearly half a million slaves ; and in the ensuing eighty years the inhabitants of the United States, increased to thirty-four, with eight associated territories, have become more than twelve times as numerous. This mighty gi'oup of English colonies has grown into a nation larger than the mother country in the number of its residents, and fourteen times as large if measured by the extent of land which it occupies. ' Yet the colraial possessions still subject to Great Britain, the most striking features in whose history have now to be set forth, comprise an area nearly four times as great, and a population nearly four times as numerous, as those of the United States. The extent of territory is not likely to be very much augmented. But the number of inhabitants may be increased almost without limit — " As the element of air affords An easy passage to tlic industrious bees Fraught with their burtliens ; and a way as smooth For those ordained to take their sounding flight From the thronged hive, and settle where tliey list In fresh abodes — their labours to renew ; So the wide waters, open to the power. The will, the instincts, and appointed needs Of Britain, do invite her to cast off Her swarms, and in succession send them forth. Bound to establish new coinmuuities On every shore wliose aspect favours hope 14 OUR EARLIEST COLONIES. Or told adventure ; promising to skill And perseverance their deserved reward. Change wide and deep, and silently performed, This land shall witness ; and, as days roll on, Earth's universal frame shall feel the effect, Even till the smallest habitable rock. Beaten by lonely billows, hear the songs Of humanized society, and bloom With civil arts that shall breathe forth their fragrance, A grateful tribute to all-ruling Heaven."* 1 Wordsworth, " The Excursion," Book ix. CHAPTER II. OUR FIRST WEST INDIAN COLONY. THE FIRST ENGLISH SETTLEMENTS IN THE WEST INDIES — THE EXPLOITS OF SIR JOHN HAWKINS AND HIS SUCCESSORS — THE COLONIZATION AND EARLY HISTORY OF BARBADOS — LORD WILLOUGHBY OF PARHAM — THE CIVIL WAR IN BARBADOS — LORD WILLOUGHBY AND SIR GEORGE AYSCUE — THE PROGRESS OF THE ISLAND DURING THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY — ITS TRADE AND POPULATION — THE SLAVES AND THEIK SUFFERINGS. [1562-1700.] F the colonies now in the possession of Great Britain, the oldest are the West Indies. They were, indeed, the scene of frequent fighting between English and Spaniards, out of which grew the subsequent colonization, long before there was any permanent settlement of our countrymen upon the American continent. It was an island of the Bahama group that Chris- topher Columbus, believing he had thus attained his project of discovering a western passage to Cathay, first visited on the 12th of October 1492; and at San Domingo, in Hispaniola, or Hayti, he soon afterwards organized the centre of Spanish government, whence proceeded countless expeditions for conquering and colonizing the adjoining islands and mainland, all of which were then known as the West Indies. For some time the Spaniards were left in undisputed 16 16 OUR FIRST WEST INDIAN COLONY. possession of these regions. To the King of Spain they were assigned by a I'apal bull, which none dared to dispute until Protestantism was powerful enough to set at defiance the authority of Rome ; and by the Spaniards they were cruelly despoiled Avith- out hindrance, until the native Indians, reduced to bitter slavery by their conquerors, were almost exter- minated. England, in fact, was first brought into important relations with the West Indies by a memorable plan — the successful working out of which cannot be looked back upon without shame — to supply the need occasioned by the rapid dying out of these Indian slaves. Tlie originator both of the negro slave-trade and of our West Indian colonization was Sir John Hawkins, ^ne of the most eminent of the great seamen under Queen Elizabeth. In his youth, says his old biographer, " he made divers voyages to the isles of the Canaries, and there, by his good and upright dealing, being grown in honour of the people, informed himself of the state of the West Indies ; and being amongst otlier things informed that negroes were very good merchandise in Hispaniola, and that store of negroes might easily be had upon the coast of Guinea, he resolved within liimseK to make trial thereof."^ This he did in 1562. With three little vessels he proceeded from England to Guinea, where he captured three hundred negroes, and, crossing the Atlantic, he sold his cargo at good profit to the Spaniards in San Domingo. His only piirpose in so doing was the adoption of a lucrative and, in his 1 Prince, " Worthies of Devon," p. 389. HAWKINS 8 SLAVE -TRADING. 17 eyes, a harmless trade. King Philip ii. of Spain, however, regarded any English interference with his colonial possessions as an offence to himself, and a source of danger to those possessions. He confis- cated a portion of Hawkins's return cargo which found its way to Cadiz, and sent out strict injunc- tions to the West Indies, that if Hawkins came again no dealings were to be had with him. Hawkins did not choose to be so thwarted. In 1564 he fitted out a larger fleet of trading ships, five in number, and, having collected a larger cargo of negroes on the western coast of Africa, went to sell them to the Spanish colonists. King Philip's orders prevented his going again to San Domingo, but he disposed of his slaves on the Spanish Main, and was able to take home a wonderful store of " gold, silver, pearls, and other jewels," which yielded a profit of sixty per cent., after all the expenses of Vhe voyage had been paid. Queen EUzabeth rewarded him with a baronetcy, and the addition of a negro, "in his proper colour, bound and captive," to his coat-of-arms ; and King Philip complained loudly of his insolent conduct in again interfering with the colonial trade of Spain. Those complaints, however, only induced Sir John Hawkins to make a third expedition, greater and more eventful than either of its predeces- sors. U^on this he started, with young Francis Drake for one of his captains, at the head of six vessels and fifteen hundred men, in 1567. The voyage was to him and his followers wholly unfor- tunate. He could only obtain a scanty supply of negroes on the African coast, and of these he had 18 OUR FIKST WEST INDIAN COLONY. difficulty in disposing on the Spanish Main. Eeturn- ing to England he was forced to seek shelter from bad weather, and the water of wliich his ships were in great need, by entering the Spanish port of San Juan de Ulloa, in Mexico. There, after a terrible fight with the Spaniards, he was utterly defeated. Great numbers of his comrades were slain. A few escaped with him to England. A hundred were taken prisoners and made slaves of by their enemies. " All our business," wrote Hawkins after his return home, " hath had infelicity, misfortune, and an un- happy end. If I were to write of all our calamities, I am sure a volume as great as the Bible will soar,:' '\'- suffice." Those calamities, however, furnished even a stronger motive for continuance of the work begun by Hawkins than sprang from his earlier successes. Bitter hatred of Spain was growing up among all Englishmen, and the hatred was increased in the hearts of many by these West Indian disasters. A desire to punish the Sj)aniards for the injuries they had inflicted on the English, and forcibly to wrest from them a share of that wealth of trade which they were forbidden to obtain in peaceable ways, actuated many, and none so keenly or with such famous con- sequences as Sir Francis Drake, who had himself suffered and lost much by the failure of Hawkins's third expedition. Drake started on a warfare of his own against Spain. Over and over again he made what would now be called piratical voyages to the West Indies and the Spanish Main, and in the course of these he captured much and destroyed much more. Others joined with him or followed in his track after ENGLAND AGAINST SPAIN. 19 he had entered upon nobler pursuits in the legitimate service of his country, -which service had the same great end, the injuring of Spain and the seizure of the wealth she was acquiring in the West Indies and on tlie neighbouring mainland. Actual conquest of the Spanish possessions was not then thought of. Tlie one thing aimed at was the spoliation of the enemy .^ But when that spoliation had been to a great extent eifected, conquest and colonization naturally and easily ensued. Thus it was that the West Indies began to pass from the hands of Spain into those of England. The islands first seized by England, however, only nominally belonged to Spain, which, while laying a claim to tlie whole group by virtue of Columbus's discovery, colonized none but those most conveni- ently situated in relation to Hispaniola, and most serviceable as places of resort for the fleets and armies engaged in the conquest and government of the great territories on the continent that were owned by Spain, from IMexico down to Chili. Many islands were never actually appropriated by her, although on that account she looked none the less jealously upon attempts at their appropriation made by other nations. So it was with Barbados and all the Caribbean group. To Barbados — thus named by some Por- tuguese, who, first visiting it, were struck by its pro- fuse store of luxuriant fig-trees, from whose branches hung down masses of foliage resembling "barbudos," or beards — the Spaniards only went to capture the fierce * The story of this work has been tohi at some length in the second volume of my " English Seamen under the Tudors." 20 OUR FIRST WEST INDIAN COLONY. Indians who there resided, and who proved such sturdy slaves that within a short time they were all kid- napped and the island was utterly deserted. It was uninhabited when, in 1605, the crew of the Olirr, Blossom — a vessel fitted out by Sir Olive Leigh, " a worshipful knight of Kent " — chanced to land on its shores. They took possession of the island, planting in a prominent locality a cross, with the inscription, "James, King of England and this island," but quitted it as soon as they had replenished their ship with a supply of pigs, pigeons, and fish, with which it abounded. Its colonization was not at- tempted till twenty years later, when another vessel, belonging to Sir William Courteen, the famous Lon- don merchant, having sought in its harbour shelter from bad weather, attention was again called to its beauty and fertility. In 1625 Lord Ley, afterwards Earl of Marlborough, obtained from King James I. a grant of the island for himself and his heirs, and by him Courteen was commissioned to establish thereon the first English colony in the West Indies. This was done by a party of about forty, who in the same year went out and began to build James-town around the cross that had been set up in 1605. Its progress was delayed by quarrels at home. In spite of the first patent, the island was in 1627 granted by Charles I. to the Earl of Carlisle, who proposed to organize "a large and copious colony of English, to be named the Carlisle province," embracing all the Caribbean Islands, from St Christopher down to Trinidad. Lord Carlisle had most influence at Court, and, after a temporary withdrawal of his patent, obtained its renewal. In 1628 he sent out THE SETTLEMENT OF BARBADOS. 21 sixty-four colonists, who, under the governorship of Sir William Tufton, formed a rival power to that established hy the earlier settlers. An angry feud, often leading to bloodshed, prevailed between the two factions, known as the windward-men and the leeward-men, until a further arrival of two hundred persons made Lord Carlisle's party strong enough to compel the submission of the others ; and after that Barbados very quickly rose to importance, both as itself a prosperous plantation, with nearly two thousand inhabitants, reinforced each year by fresh arrivals, and as a centre for the capture and colonization of the neighbouring islands. The details of this capture and colonization need not here be given. Some of the islands were only seized and abandoned, not to be permanently occu- pied by Englishmen until many years later. Others, of which St Christopher was the principal, became prosperous settlements for a time, but, for various causes, passed out of English hands, only to be recovered long afterwards. Barbados was the only one of the eastern group of "West Indian. Islands which greatly flourished during the seventeenth century, and in even its progress there were disturb- ing, though hardly restraining, influences. The main cause of turmoil within it was also an important cause of its advancement. The strife of parties at home under Charles i. and the Commonwealth leaders, inducing many Englishmen to seek peace in the second England that was growing up on the American continent, drove many also to the fertile little island. "These adventurers," says the Earl of Clarendon, "planted without anybody's leave, and without being ore nssT wcsr indias coloxt. oftposed or . y anyltotiy." In K.-"rt, oaly twenty-five jvm alter the first paxtr of settlers had arnTvd, tfe popaktiaa eaB{R-^^ tveatj Mad vUle ■»■, wkk a ^Mrily nooiber of 1 It lad ail — d f ygro too lar^ to be BMH^Bd hf tiw Eaufa «f Cat&fe or tl^ absents vbom Aef mtA LMdWiHii^lij «f r^iteiii, to vhM he ■iiii^wfi. hairtiwpMpmj of the wiwJe CaiflAtaMi of tvevtr-doe rears, on CIVIL WAK IX BJLCBADOS. in the liberty " which had been purcliased at tlie expense n after tliat, the Isknd wu ? seized by France, which refuised to countenance any but French freebooters. The English rovers had to seek another haunt, and, while thoy were seeking, Crom- well's force, under Gejieial Venables, took pcjssession of Jamaica. Thiiher a great many of the buccaneers at once went, and it was mainly by their assistance that two powerful attempts to recover the island for Spain, made in 1607 and 1658, were rendered utterly futile. It was ftartly in gratitude for their aid, partly Ik-cuusc their further protection might be T IfObUAS. witJi 37 ■wMcrtdr MTBipatliiznl DCH-U'v. the Ea^Uh tiiat time, to make Jamaica a n>;ziilar fdaoe of geaort . Their crciwd of with than, and the kland waa at and unikheA br Iheir brM*ty. We are told by £xqtu.'UK-lin, the hm4trvia uf tlie buccaneen. kramelf ooe of tiicir nnmlier, buw one especially aaed to «<«'^^g*«t in plucin'^ a pi[ie of wine in the fltreeu of Flott B<*yal, and then. «-ith a pi^ud in his hand, compel every paaacr-hy to drink with him. ** At other limes he would do the same with barreU of ale and Ijeer ; and very often with both his hands be would throw tlw:!i[iarel or nut, were they men or woriien." Tlie great" 'st of the English buccaneers was Cap- tain Henry Moriran. The son of a Welsh yeoman, lie liiid gone out in his youth to settle in Iktrbados. There lie w;i3 forced into slavery for some years, until, on his escape, he joined the buccaneers. By liis wit and daring he sofm became a favourite among them, and in the end he was recognised leader of a large section of the frateniity. By Colonel D'Oyley lie was encouraged in his marauding e.x- peditious, and as most of the treasure acquired in those exjjeditions was spent in Jamaica, the island derived as much j»rofit as couM result from the extravagance and debauchery of the buccaneers. Morgan's most famous exploits were in 1G70 and 1071. With nine vessels, and less than five hundred men, he proceeded, in the first summer, to surprise 38 JAMAICA AXD THE BLCCANEERS. the rich and stron;:ly fortifn-d Sjtanish city of Porto iJello, near the Isthmus of Panama. In this he was successful, and after a fortnight's brutal riot in the cajitured town, he t(H)k back a great store of money, and vast quantics of silks, cloths, an. is removed to the fish-flakes, and there spread in the sun to dry, being piled up in small faggots at night. When sufficiently dried, the cod are stored up in warehouses, ready for exportation." ^ In 1867, 815,088 quintals of cod-fish, thus cured, were exported. * Martin, vol. i. pp. 334, 336. CHAPTER VII. FRENCH NORTH AMERICA. THE FRENCH IN NORTH AMERICA — THE COLONY OF NEW FRANCE — SAMUEL CHAMl'LAIN — THE PllOGRESS OF THE COLONY — WAK3 WITH THE INDIANS AND THE ENGLISH — THE CONTESTS BE- TWEEN THE ENGLISH AND FRENCH COLONISTS — THE ENGLISH CONQUESTS OF NOVA SCOTIA, CAl'E BRETON, AND CANADA. [152i-17G0.] N IT) 24 Giovanni Verazzano, a Florentine in the service of France, went on a voyage in search of the north-west passage to Cathay. Knowing what Cabot had to find out for himself, that America stood in the way, he sailed across the Atlantic to the west of Carolina, intending thence to follow the northward course of the shore. This he did, making curious acquaintance with the natives whom he passed, until he reached Nova Scotia. There, rightly judging that he had already made discoveries of sufficient importance, he abandoned his first intention, and, passing tlie eastern side of Newfoundland, he returned to France. His proposal that all this great territory should at once be appropriated by King Francis i. was not adopted ; but ten years afterwards, in 1534, Francis sent out another exploring expedition under Jaques Cartier. Cartier first visited Newfoundland, and nearly cir- cumnavigated it ; and then passed through the Gulf of St Lawrence into Chaleiir Bav, so named by him 81 P 82 FEEXCH NOETII AMERICA. because of the primmer heat which he found there. On its shore he erected " a fair high cross," from which was suspended a shield marked with a fleur- de-lys, and the words, " Vive le Eoi de la France," in token that the country was henceforth the pn perty of his master. Going home in the autumn, he wiis next year sent to prosecute his discoveries. He entered the St Lawrence river, and, passing the site of Quebec, proceeded to a hill from which he had so fair a prospect of the surrounding country that he called it Mont-Royal, now IMontreal. Hearing the natives talk of their " canada," or huts, he supposed that to be the name of the country. On his return to France he urged its immediate colonization. To that, howevsr, Francis I. did not consent, and after two feeble efforts made by a French nobleman^ the Seigneur de Eoberval, Canada was undisturbed by Europeans for more than fifty years. But it was not forgotten. In -1598 Henry iv. sent a party of convicts, under the ;^^arquis de la Eoche, to explore and colonize New France, as Canada was then styled. They seem not to have gone so far, but, halting at Sable Island, near Nova Scotia, to have there lived miserably, until seven years afterwards, when, in pity for their state, the survivors, twelve in number, were allowed to go back to France. Before that, in 1600, King Henry had granted a patent for the more orderly colonization of the North American continent, and in 1G03 an expedition was sent out under the guidance of the famous Samuel Champlain. That expedition was only planned for exploring the country. Champlain proceeded to the St Lawrence river and tracked its course as far as THE BEGINNING OF NEW FKANCE. 83 Montreal, wliither Cartier had gone long before, and went home with a report of his observations in tlie same year. In 1604 he went out again with a small colonizing party, of -which the Sieur de Monts was appointed governor; "all New France," says the chronicler, " being contained in two ships." They went, not to the mouth of the St La^vTence, but to the districts a little south of it, now known as Nova Scotia, and there they wandered about for some time, exploring all the country and making a place which they called Port Eoyal, now Annapolis, the centre of their investigations. A simple little colony grew up under the wise management of Champlain, who, while De Monts was in France, to which he returned to arrange for extension of the colony, was its chief director. The task of providing food for the company was each day assigned in turn to one of the number. "We had ordinarily," they said, " as good cheer as we could have at La Piue aux Ours of Paris, and at far less charges, for there was none but two days before his time came was careful to go a hunting and fishing, and brought some dainty thing besides that which was our ordinary allowance. When March caiiie, the best disposed among us did strive who should best till the ground, and make gardens to sow in them. It was a marvellous pleasure to see them daily grow up, and -^et greater contentment to use thereof so abundantly as we did."^ After four years thus pleasantly spent in explora- tion and deliberation, the pite of Quebec — the Indian name of a strait — was fixed upon as the chief station. Champlain went home for two more ship-loads of 1 Churchill, "Collection of Voj'ages." 84 FRENCH NORTH AMERICA. people and stores, and returned, as lieutenant-gover- nor of the colony, in July 1608. His first care w^as to divide the land, to see that it was suitably cleared and built upon, and to make sure of provisions for the winter ; his second, to be friends A\'ith the neigh- bouring Indians. This policy led him to assist the Algenquins in war with the Irocj^uois, when he won a battle with a single gun-shot. The shot killed two chiefs and wounded another ; whereupon, terrified by the new sight and sound, and by the instant falling of the leaders, the enemy fled. Slowly and steadily the colony advanced under the wise oversight of Champlain. Missionaries and more settlers came. Some of the idle colonists showed an inclination to mutiny, and made violent efforts to bring Champlain into disgrace with the French king. Though these were unsuccessful, they led to embarrassment by causing the appearance of a rival party of colonists. But Champlain quickly overcame all difficulties. He succeeded in amalgamating the two parties. He sent back to France those settlers who refused to work. He formed alliances with the friendly native tribes. Hostile tribes he checked by his firm deal- ing, at the cost of very little blood. On one occasion he was offered, by way of hostage, three young girls to bring up as he chose. He accepted the gift, and they became almost the first Indian converts to Christianity, One of them soon died ; but the other two he carefully educated, and learned to love as daughters. In that prudent way the colony of New France, or Acadie, the first European settlement in the northern parts of the American continent, was begun. But SAMUEL CHAMPLAIN'iS COLONY. 85 troubles soon arr-e to hinder its progress, although by them fresh attention Avas attracted to the work, and thus it was ultimately helped on. ■ JNIany of the first colonists were Huguenots. In 1627 the whole enterprise was intrusted to a new and Catholic association, styled the Company of One Hundred Partners, which, under the direction of Cardinal Eichelieu, Louis xin.'s great minister, made its first great object the conversion of the North American Indians to Christianity ; its second, the extension of commerce, and especially of the fur trade. Jesuits were sent out as spiritiial guides of the enterprise, and " Protestants and other heretics and Jews " were rigidly excluded. Champlain had only commenced to reorganize his colony in accordance with these arrangements, when a much greater embarrassment arose. The proceed- ings of the French in North America were jealously regarded by the English, who, though they had hitherto been content with prosecuting the New- foundland fisheries, regarded the whole region as their ov.-n by right of Jolm Cabot's discovery. In 1614 the governor of Virginia sent a force to Nova Scotia, and there captured and destroyed the little settlement at Port Eoyal, which Champlain had first established. As nothing more was done at that time, and as the French colonists were then prospering in their new home at Quebec, they were not much dis- turbed by that action. But in 1621, Sir William Alexander obtained from James I. a grant of the whole peninsula in which Port Eoyal hod been con- structed, and which, as it was to be colonized by Scotchmen, was now ^r the first time styled Nova 8G FKENCH NORTH AMERICA. Scotia, and, to aid liis project, a distinct body of gentry, the baronets of Nova Scotia, was organized in 1625 by Charles i., each baronet receiving 10,000 acres of land, and being bound to send out six men to the colony. Alexander at first contented himself with driving out all the French still resident in the peninsula ; but in 1028 he sent David Kirk, a French Protestant refugee of Scottish origin, to invade Quebec. lie entered the St Lawrence with a small lleet and summoned Champlain to surrender. Cham- plain replied that " he was sure Kirk would respect him much more for defending himself, than for abandoning his charge without first making trial of the English guns and batteries," and that he would wait his attack. But the failure of suj)plies, both in food and powder, reduced the garrison of Quebec to such extremities, that, when Kirk returned in the following year, Champlain was forced to abandon the settlement without a struggle. He returned to France, and for three years Quebec was in the hands of the English. In 1633, however, by the treaty of St Germains, between Charles I. and Louis xiii., Quebec and aU the disputed territory, from Cape Breton into the unknown west, was ceded to France, and Champlain went back to the settlement for which he had done so much. He died in 1635, having fairly earned the title, given him by comrades and successors, of Father of the Colony. Acadie, or New France, as the whole territory was again called, then revived, although dejtined to be the scene of frequent strife between the rival nations for a hundred and fifty years more. ENGLISH AND INDIAN ENEMIES. 87 Troubles also came from the Indians, -whose rights were by no means so well respected as they had been by Champlain, though even he had at last found it impossible to abstain from mixing in their quarrels, and so, while receiving the fiiendsliip of some, meeting with vindictive opposition from others. The fur trade, from which the French settlers derived most of their profit, brought them into intimate relations with the natives, and, besides the legitimate barter, they soon acquired the habit of exacting from tliose tribes whom they protected, as well as from those they conquered, a heavy tribute in skins. Thus they made for themselves sullen friends and open enemies, ready to use the endless opportunities that occurred for revenging upon individuals the injuries that they received from the whole community. Gradually encroaching upon the native territories, and, in spite the frequent loss of life and property which they incun-ed at the hands of the Indians, growing steadily in numbers and ±uiluence, the French sought to extend their dominion in a southerly as well as in a westerly direction. With the English settlements on the coast they dared not interfere ; but from Montreal, which was founded as an European town in 1644, as well as from Quebec and the intervening forts, they made numerous raids towards the south in the interior, aiming to carry the limits of New France down to the Mississippi. There they over and over again came into collision with the English, who, also seeking to obtain furs fi'om the natives, went westward too, and considered that the St Lawrence and the great lakes connected with it formed the narrowest boundary proper to New 88 FKEXCH NORTH AMERICA. England. Tlius tlie barrier-line became an endless subject of dispute, and a cause of private warfare, to which the peace existing between the two nations in Europe yielded no restraint. A curious instance of the aggressive spirit encouraged among the French colonists by Louis xiv. and his bold ministers, Richelieu and Colbert, is in the charter granted in 1G62 to a new West Indian Company, as it was styled, which was to try and win possession of all the best parts of both North and South America, as well as the neighbouring islands, from the Amazon lip to Hudson's Bay, and, in fact, of every region and country, " so far as the said Company may be able to penetrate, whether the countries may now appertain to France, as being or having been occupied by Frenchmen, or in so far as the said Company shall establish itself by exterminating or conquering the natives or colonists of such European nations as are not our allies." The French AVest India Company did not long have authority over the colonists of Canada; but the colonists readily adopted the policy of " exter- mination or conquest" on which it was founded. In 1678, one named La Salle started an organized scheme for penetrating south. After two years of preparation, he proceeded westward as far as the Mississippi, and graikially passed down its course till he reached its mouth, in the Bay of Mexico. Of the adjoining country he took possession in the name of his sovereign, in whose honour he called it Louisiana. He also set up a fort in Florida. Soon after that his men mutinied, and put him to death ; but others carried on his ambitious project. WARS WITH THE EXGLISH. 89 Alliances were formed with the Illinois and other Indian tribes near the Mississippi, and a fierce war was waged between these allies and the Iroquois and other tribes, Avhom the Ent^lish colonists on the coast be- friended. AVith the Illinois on their side, the French found they had raised up an opposition too formid- able to be properly withstood; and wlien, in. 1689, the Illinois made peace with the Iroquois, and all the Indians became partisans of the English interest, they were in imminent danger of themselves falling victims to the " extermination and conquest " which they de- signed for othei's. In desperation, Froutignac, then governor of Quebec, planned an expedition for the capture of New York and the neighbouring settle- ments ot the English. As a counter move the people of New York and New England sent an army, under General Winthrop, for the conquest of Nova Scotia. Both expeditions failed, but others were entered upon, until, both French and English being wearied out by their previous strife, there was for a time a ces- sation of hostilities. The greater strength of the English in America, however, keeping pace Avith the successes of the mother-country in Europe, caused a serious crippling of the projects of their colonial enemies. By the Treaty of Utrecht, in 1713, besides the abandonment of the French claims to Newfound- land, which has been referred to. Nova Scotia, or Acadie, was given up to the English, and all schemes for the extension of French sovereignty along the jMississippi were declared to be unlawful. New France was thus restricted to the regions then and still known as Canada. The restriction was not perman- ent, and the lack of any proper definition of the 90 * FRENCH NORTH AMERICA. boundaries left room for future quarrel, but for a time there was peace. New France had suffered greatly from tlie ambi- tion of its colonists and their governors. During the peace time it made rapid progress. " In 1720," we are told, " Quebec had a population of about 7000, and Montreal of 3000. Nineteen vessels cleared from Quebec, laden with peltries, lumbar, tar, to- bacco, flour, and pork, and four men-of-war were built in the colony. Part of the upper and lower towns of Quebec had been built, but the adjacent shores and islands were still covered with forests. The society generally was described as gay and sociable, consisting chiefly of military men and the lower order of noblesse, all poor and likely to con- tinue so, being much better adapted for practising the most agreeable ways of spending money than the more laborious methods of making it. They saw their English neighbours steadily employed in accumu- lating wealth, but consoled themselves with the reflec- tion that they did not know how to enjoy it. Their favourite employment was the fur-trade, the only one indeed at all adapted to their excitable natures and desultory habits ; but the little fortunes they occasionally made thereby were compared by the traveller who visited them to the hillocks of sand in the deserts of Africa, which rise and disappear almost at the same moment. Below Quebec the banks of the St Lawrence were laid out in tolerably cultivated seigniories. Trois Eivi^res then contained only 800 inhabitants. The city of Montreal was rapidly extending, and was in a great degree pro- tected from the incursions of hostile Indians by vil- CANADA IN THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY. 91 lages inhabited by friendly tribes. Above ^lontreal there were only detached stations for defence and barter with the natives. Fort Cataraqui, or Fron- tenal, on Lake Ontario, appears to have stood in the midst of an uncultivated country, without any settle- ments in its vicinity. At Niagara a cottage was dignified with the name of a fort, and guarded by a few French officers and soldiers."^ That moderate prosperity, and all the care taken by the colonists for their solid advancement in ways of agriculture and commerce, was chiefly due to the wise government of the Marquis de Vaudreuil, who died in 1725, after ruling in Canada for twenty-two years. His successor, the Marquis de Beauharnois, was of more ambitious temperament, and under him new quarrels with the English were provoked. They were of no great importance, untd they were aggra- vated by the outbreak of fresh war between England and France in 174^1. In 1745 Cape Breton, a valuable island which had remained in the hands of the French after the surrender of the neighbouring mainland of Xova Scotia, was taken by a naval force from Britain, aided by New England troops; and in 1746 and 1747 the French sought to recover both it and Nova Scotia. By the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle, in 1748, Cape Breton was restored, and Nova Scotia was left in English hands ; but the spirit of opposition thus re- vived between the rival colonists could not be wholly stayed by European treaties. The old antagonism as to the possession of the basin of the Mississippi, and the adjoining districts, again became formidable, and they were augmented by a new governor of 1 Martin, vol. i. p. 10. 92 FItENCII NORTH AMERICA. Canada, the Marquis du Quesne, wlio arrived in 1752; and the violence of his successor, anotlaer Marquis de Vaudreuil, sent out in 1755, led to the final over- throw of his government and of the authority of Frence in North America. The Pennsylvanians had carried on a lively trade in furs with the Iroquois who resided between Lakes IMichigan and Erie, until the importance of the trade led to the planning of the separate settlement of Ohio. That movement provoked the jealousy of the Canadians, Avho asserted their right to the territory, and proceeded to maintain their title by force of arms. Thus Avar began again. Du Quesne built a fort, which bore his own name ; and the English erected a Fort Necessity, very near to it, which George Washington, then learning his work as a soldier and a patriot, was sent to defend. This he did, until, in an attaclc on Fort du Quesne, he was unsuccessful, and then he had to capitulate. Good came out of this defeat, however, as it helped to arouse English interest in the dispute. A strong force was organized and sent out, in January 1755, under General Braddock, who, detaching a part of his army for work in other quarters, led the rest into Ohio, with Washington as his second, in com- mand. There he was mortally wounded and his army defeated. Other defeats followed. The English sol- diers, ill adapted for the new ways of fighting in which they had to engage, and often at variance with the colonial militias, proved at first unable to cope with the Canadians, who had been reinforced by a large body of troops from France. Not till 1758, when Pitt had sent out another strong force ITS CONQUEST BY ENGLAND. 93 for the assistance of the colonists, were they able to withstand the encroachments of the enemy. Then, however, the tide turned. Sir Ealph Aber- crombie, as commander-in-chief, found himself at che head of an army of 50,000 men, and able to make three separate and formidable attacks upon the French in Canada, and the outlying districts which they had begun to regard as their own. Tlie first, under General Amherst, with James Wolfe as his chief assistant, was sent to capture Cape Breton, and this was soon done through the skill and boldness of Wolfe. The second, led by Abercrombie against the enemy's forts in the basin of the Mississippi, was less successful, but it served to hinder the French from making any fresh encroachments in that direction. The third, in which Washington was employed, with General Forbes for chief, was directed against Fort du Quesne, which was easily captured, and the whole Ohio district was thus restored to the English. In these ways the summer of 1758 was well em- ployed. In 1759 yet bolder work was done. Three separate armies were again organized, and each achieved the task assigned to it. By one the jVIis- sissippi region was secured; and by another Fort Niagara was captured, and the French were thus driven north of the St Lawrence. But the exploits of the third army were more memorable. It was commanded by General Wolfe, who, though then only thirty -three years old, had been intrusted with the most difficult work of all. He was to make himself master of Quebec, and thus expel the French from their central stronghold. " Before the city, more strongly fortified by nature than by art, could 94 FRENCH NORTH AMERICA. be attacked," says his biographer, " a vast theatre, exceeding thirty miles in extent, and embracing both sides of a prodigious river, had to be occupied by an army numbering not quite 7000 men. Within view of a much superior force, in a hostile country, and surrounded by prowling savages, it was neces- sary that distinct operations should be carried on by several detachments ; but distant though these detachments were, AVolfe, by his constant presence as well as by his master-mind, so directed them that they acted with all the unity of a single battalion. Between the invaders and the only weak side of the city lay a defensive army, surrounded by im- pregnable entrenchments, and commanded by a cau- tious and hitherto successful general ; but Wolfe, by his unwearied vigilance and his untiring persever- ance, at length beguiled his unwilling adversary to meet him in the open field." ^ " Tn this contest, with so many difFiculties, one may say with nature itself," said Burke, " the genius of the commander showed itself superior to everything, all the dispo- sitions were so many masterpieces in the art of war." Wolfe, with whom acted a fleet of twenty sail of the line, landed on the isle of Orleans, overlooking Quebec, at the end of June 1759. The French army of about 13,000 men, commanded by the Marquis de Montcalm, was quartered partly in the lower town, on the bank of the river, partly in the upper town, built on a hill to the westward, partly on the fortified heights stretching eastward as far as the Falls of Montmorency. Wolfe occupied Point Levi, on the south side of the St Lawrence, exactly oppo- * Wi-iglit, ' ' Life of Major-Geiieral James Wolfe." WOLFE'S SIEGE OF QUEBEC. 95 site to Quebec, with a portion of his army, which he instructed to bombard the town. This was un- successful, and he himself failed in an attempt to seize the entrenchments at Montmorency, when 182 of his men were killed, and G50 wounded. Further action was delayed by a fever whicb. threatened to remove him before his work was done, and he had, in July, to transport most of his troops to Point Levi, leaving only a garrison on the isle of Orleans. He was still weak, and no immediate movement was expectei:' by the enemy, when, shortly after midnight of the 12th of September, he stealthily embarked his army in flat-bottomed boats and followed the tide as far as a convenient landing-place on the north- ern shore, now known as WoKe's Cove. Thence he marched along a rocky path, and by day-break was on the Plains of Abraham, above Quebec, and in the rear of the army of De Montcalm. The French general, as Wolfe had anticipated, thought that only a part of the English army had thus approached, and went recklessly to punish the impudent intruders. At ten o'clock the armies met, Wolfe's being care- fully and compactly arranged for the battle, De Mont- calm's in some confusion and widely spread out. No English shot was fired till the nearest French were within forty yards of their assailants. Then volley succeeded volley, while Wolfe himself headed a bayonet charge. Twice he was wounded without abandoning his place as leader of the attack. A third and mortal wound made it impossible for him to hold up any longer. " Support me," he whispered to one near him, " let not my brave soldiers see me drop. The day is ours : keep it !" He was taken to 96 FKENCH NORTH AMERICA. the rear and a surgeon was called. " It is needless," he said, " it's all over with me." They thought it was even then all ovo- with him, when some soldiers were heard shouting, " Tliey run ! they run !" Wolfe started up, and asked in a leaden whisper, '' Who runs?" "The enemy, sir," was the an.swer; "they give way everywhere." " God be praised !" he said. " One of you run to Colonel Barton, and tell him to march with all speed down to Charles Kiver, and cut off the retreat of the fugitives. I die in peace." The exploit by which he died won Canada for Great Britain. Quebec rjj_'eedily capitulated. The English who had occupied it were feebly besieged by the enemy in the following spring; bvit an Englisli fleet drove them off, and taking refuge in ISIontreal, they Avere there surrounded on the 8th of September 1760 by all the three branches of the British army. On the same day they tendered their submission, and before night-time the whole of New France was formally surrendered to England. That surrender was confirmed by the treaty of peace signed in Paris in 1762. CHAPTER VIIT. NOVA SCOTIA AND NEW BRUNSWICK. THE FRENCH SETTLERS IX NOVA SCOTIA — THEIR BANISHMENT IN 1755 — PROGRESS OF NOVA SCOTIA, CAI'E BRETON, AND NEW BRUNSWICK UNDER THE ENOI.ISH— A FIIIE IN NEW BRUNSWICK — PRINCE Edward's island. [1755-lSGl.] OVA Scotia ov Acadie, as we have seen, having been colonized by the French in 1604, was in 1614 conquered by the Eng- lish, and in 1621 assigned by James I. to Sir William Alexander and his baronets of Nova Scotia. In 1667 it was given back to France, and in 1713 it was again and finally transferred to Great Britain, although, for nearly half a century more, a frequent source of contest between the two nations. By General Nicholson, the first British governor, the French residents, then numbering nearly 10,000, were allowed to remain in peaceable occupation of their homes and property, and this notwithstanding the refusal of most of them to abandon their allegiance to the crown of Frrrace. Forty years afterwards tlioy had increased to about 17,000 or 18,000, the British settlers being only some 5000. The presence of so great a majority of aliens, all whose sympathies were with the Canadians, who were then attempting to regain the colony, was a not unreasonable cause of alarm to the subjects of George m,; and as, in 1755, 97 G 98 NOVA SCOTIA AND NEW BRUNSWICK. they erected forts, and in various ways sought to aid their countrymen in a new project for reconqucst, they were iu that year violently removed by the English authorities, and distributed over the colonics of New England, New York, and Virginia. Only after the transfer of all the French North American territories to Great Britain in 1760 were these unfor- tunate people permitted to return to their homes, and then solely on coiulition of their avowing themselves British subjects. About a sixth of the number availed themselves of the permission. Their sufferings, for which, it must be admitted, that they or their leaders were alone responsible, has been told in the pathetic poem of " Evangeline," which, if it uses pardonable licence in concealing the offences of many of the French settlers, in no way exaggerates the virtues of some and the troubles of all. Picturesque, and doubt- less true, is its portrayal of the homely life of tlie more quiet of their number — ' ' In the Acadian land, on the shores of the Basin ^aste lands of the province. They are all-powerful in the chartered banks, and till lately shared amongst themselves, almost exclusively, all offices of trust and profit. A monopoly of power so extensive and so lasting could not fail, in process of time, to excite envy, create dissatisfaction, and ultimately provoke attack ; and an opposition conse- quently grew up in the Assembly, which assailed tiie ruling party by appealing to popixlar principles of government, by denouncing the alleged jobbing and profusion of the official body, and by instituting inquiries into abuses for tlie purpose of promotin^r MISGOVERNMENT AND ITS FKLTl'S. 121 reform and especially economy. Tlie official party, not being removed when it failed to command a majority in the Assemuly, still continued to wield all the powers of the executive government, to strengthen itself by its patronage, and to inilueiice the policy of the colonial governor, and of the colonial department at home. By its secure majority in the Legislative Council it could effectually control the legislative powers of the Assembly. It could choose its moment for dissolving hostile Assemblies, and could always ensure for those who were favourable to itself the tenure of their seats for the full term of the four years allowed by law." Of tliat sort was the political feud that existed and seriously hindered the progress of Lower Canada in all ways during more than twenty years following the termination of the Avar with the United States. In 1831 the British Parliament declared that the House of Assembly shoi;ld have control over the colonial revenues, thus conceding one point which had long been a source of reasonable complaint ; but the official party, forced to yield in this respect, became more tyrannical in others, and the result was that greater discontent than ever prevailed. In 1835 a Eoyal Commission was sent out to investigate this unfor- tunate state of affairs and suggest a remedy; but no material benefit resulted from its proceedings. In the meanwhile a similar and even more violent antagonism had been established in Ui^per Canada, now a province almost as populous as the othor. Here an official party also gained supremacy in the Legislative Council, and set at nought the opinions and decisions of the House of Assembly; but the members 122 " ' CANADA. of the House of Assembly and those who elected them were not French habitans, but rough Englishmen, more out-spoken in their demands, and more deter- mined that those demands should be complied with. Whereas in the eastern provinces none did more than complain, and offer such resistance as was strictly- legal, the extreme section of the popular party in the west soon resolved to take the law into their own hands. In December some five or six hundred of this section, headed by a man named Mackenzie, assembled a few miles from Toronto, intending to surprise the city and instigate an insurrection for transferring the whole province to the United States. Sir Francis Head, the governor, however, was warned of this movement in time. By him a strong force of volunteers and militia was quickly mustered for the defence of Toronto, and he called on the rebels to surrender their arms. On their refusing, the volun- teers and militia, under Lieutenant-Colonel M']!^ab, the Speaker of the House of Assembly, went out to compel them, and this was quickly done, with loss of only a few of the insurgents. The rebellion of 1837, as it was called, only lasted three days, and in it were implicated only a few of the most ignorant and least influential colonists. But it gave reasonable alarm, both in the colony and at home; and its occur- rence, together with the long-continued feuds between the Legislative Council and the House of Assembly in each of the two provinces, made it necessary that the utmost efforts should be made to remedy the existing evils. Accordingly, in 1838, the Earl of Durham, a statesman of rare wisdom and ability, was sent out as Governor-General of all the provinces of THE INSURRECTIONS OF 1837 AND 1838. 123 British Xorth America, with special functions for "the adjustment of certain important questions depending in the provinces of East and West Canada respecting the form and future government of tlie said provinces." Lord Durham's visit to Canada marks a turning- point in its history. He visited all the principal stations in the colony, and in each made careful inquiry as to the state of the people, and the require- ments for their good government. In the end he recommended that the two provinces should again be made one, with a single legislative and adminis- trative system, in which the governor should be aided by a Legislative Council in harmony with the people and with its representatives in the House of Assembly; and that that body should have powers of legislation and control over the administration, of like nature to that possessed by the British House of Commons. He also recommended such an union of all the British North American colonies as has lately been inaugurated. " Our first duty," he nobly urged, " is to secure the well-being of our colonial countrymen ; and if, in the hidden decrees of that wisdom by which the world is ruled, it is written that these countries are not for ever to remain portions of the empire, we owe it to our honour to take good care that, when they separate from us, they should not be the only countries on the American continent in which the Anglo-Saxon race shall be found unfit to govern itself." Lord Durham's recommendations had not reach(3d England when fresh evidence of the need of their adoption, or at any rate of some sound remedial 124 CANADA. measures regarding Canada, was afforded by a second re})ellion, small, but larger than tlie first, which broke out in November 1838. Its forerunner had revived in the United States the hope of annexing the pros- perous district north of the St T-awrence; and by some lawless subjects, who received no countenance from the Government, and whose action somewhat re- sembled that of the supporters of the Fenian agitation in our own day, the second rising was encouraged. It consisted in an attempt, by about four thousand violent persons, to efl'ect a rising in the neighbour- hood of Montreal. But within less than a week they were subdued by two hundred volunteers, who, in a contest lasting two hours and a half, had fifteen of their number killed and wounded, the loss of the insurgents being about a hundred. The most important suggestions of the Earl of Durham were adopted in 1839. The two provinces were reunited, and the machinery of government was reorganized, under the superintendence of IMr Charles Poulett Thompson, who, for the zeal, tact, and good feeling towards all classes with which he did his work, was made Baron Sydenham shortly before his untimely death in 1841. To him Sir Charles Metcalf proved a wise successor ; and of the history of the next five and twenty years it is enough to say, that, amid the many obstacles that had grown up during the three-quarters of a century before, rapid progress was made in the establishment of peace and order, and in meeting the requirements not only of the large population then in the colony, but of the rapid in-come of fresh settlers. The histoiy of Canada, as a separate province, ends witli US KECENT PROGRESS. 125 the adoption of Lord Durham's other suggestion, the union of all the British North American colonies under one government. In 1865 the Canadian Con- federation was proposed, and four delegates from the colony visited England to urge its feasibility, and take counsel as to its details. In 18G7 the Confede- ration was authorized, and it now comprises Canada, Xew Brunswick, Nova Scotia, and Prince Edward's Island. To it will doubtless be added aU the other British possessions in North America. In spite of its troubles, Canada has during the present centuiy increased more rapidly in population than any portion of the world, except Australia — more raj^idly even tlian the United States ; and the tide of wealth has not been very much behind that of population. The comparison between the growth of population in Canada and that in the United States is noteworthy. "Boston," we are told, "be- tween 1840 and 1850, increased forty-five per cent. Toronto, within the same period, increased ninety- live per cent. New York, the great emporium of the United States, and regarded as the most prosperous city in the world, increased, in the same time, sixty- six per cent., about thirty less than Toronto. The cities of St Louis and Cincinnati, which have also experienced extraordinary prosperity, do not compare with Canada any better. In the thirty years preced- ing 1850, the population of St Louis increased fifteen times. In the thirty-three years preceding the same year, Toronto increased eighteen times. And Cincin- nati increased, in the same period given to St Louis, but twelve times. Hamilton, a beautiful Canadian city at the head of Lake Ontario, and founded much 126 CANADA. more recently than Toronto, has also had almost unexampled prosperity. In 1836 its population was but 2846 ; in 1854 it was upwards of 20,000. London, still farther west in Upper Canada, and a yet more recently-founded city than Hamilton, being surveyed as a wilderness little more than twenty-five years ago, has now upwards of 10,000 inhabitants. The city of Ottawa, recently called after the magnificent river of that name, and upon which it is situated, has now above 10,000 inhabitants, although in 1830 it had but one hundred and forty houses, including mere slieds and shanties ; and the property upon which it is built was purchased, not many years before, for £80. The town of Bradford, situated between Hamil- ton and London, and whose site was an absolute wilderness twenty-five years ago, has now a popula- tion of 6000, and has increased, in ten years, upwards of three hundred per cent.; and this without any other stimulant or cause save the business arising from the settlement of a fine country adjacent to it. The towns of Belleville, Cobourg, Woodstock, Gode- rich, St Catherine's, Paris, Stratford, Port Hope, and Dundas, in Upper Canada, show similar prosperity, some of them having increased in a ratio even greater than that of Toronto, and all of them but so many evidences of the improvement of the country, and the growth of business and population around them. That some of the smaller towns in the United States have enjoyed equal prosperity can be readily believed, from the circumstance of a large population suddenly filling up the country contiguous to them. Buffalo and. Chicago, too, as cities, are magnificent and un- paralleled examples of the business, the energy, and . ITS RECENT PROGRESS. 127 the progress of the United States. But that Toronto should have quietly and unostentatiously increased in population in a greater ratio than New York, St Louis, and Cincinnati, and that the other cities and towns of Upper Canada should have kept pace with the capital, is a fact creditahle alike to the steady in- dustry and the noiseless enterprise of the Canadian people. Although Lower Canada, from the circum- stance of the tide of emigration flowing westward, has not advanced so rapidly as her sister province, yet some of her counties and cities have recently made great progress. In the seven years preceding 1851, the county of Megantic, on the south side of the St Lawrence, and through which the Quebec and Richmond railroad passes, increased a hundred and sixteen per cent.; the county of Ottawa, eighty-five; the county of Drummond, seventy-eight ; and the county of Sherbrook, fifty. The city of Montreal, probably the most substantially-built city in America, and certainly one of the most beautiful, has trebled her population in thirty-four years. The ancient city of 'Quebec has more than doubled her population in the same time ; and Sorel, at the mouth of the Eichelieu, has increased upwards of four times, show- ing that Lower Canada, with all the disadvantages of a feudal tenure, and of being generally looked upon as less desirable for settlement than the west, has quietly but justly put in her claim to a portion of the honour awarded to America for her progress."^ ^ Russell, " Canada ; its Defences, Condition, and Resources." V CHAPTEE X. ^ THE Hudson's bay territory. \ TUT. nrnsoN s hay company and its territory — rivaltiy ik THE EIGHTEENTH CENTURY — THE CHARACTER AND WORKINQ OF THE COMPANY — ITS SERVANTS AND SUBJECTS — THE RED RIVER SETTLEMENT — VANCOUVER ISLAND AND BRITISH COL- UMBIA — DISSOLUTION OF THE HUDSON'S BAY COMPANY. [1670-1868.] N" IGIO Henry Hudson, wlio had already- made other memorable voyages of dis- covery both in the far north and along the shores of the American continent, set out on an expedition in search of a north-west pas- sage to India. He perished in the quest ; but not bei'ore he had exploited several coasts and outlets, and especially the great sea called Hudson's Bay in honour of him, and Hudson's Straitw, which lead to it. Others followed in his track, and in 1668 Prince Eupert fitted out a vessel designed to form a settle- ment in the bay, and put to use the vast territories that had hitherto been only nominally subject to the English Crown. The expedition succeeded; and in 1670 the Hudson's Ray Company, with Prince Eupert at its head, was formed for the appropriation of the region, and the development of commerce in it. This region, known as Prince Eupert's Land, or the Hudson's Bay Territory, comprised, according to the v.ording of tlie Company's charter, " all lands and 128 THE HUDSON'S BAY COMPANY. 129 territories upon the countries, coasts, and confines of the seas, bays, lakes, rivers, creeks, and sounds, in whatsoever latitude they sliall be, that lie within the entrance of the straits, commonly called Hudson's Straits, that are not already actually possessed by, or granted to, any of our subjects, or possessed by the subjects of any otlier Christian prince or state." To the Company was also conceded " the whole and entire trade and traffic to and upon all havens, bays, creeks, rivers, lakes, and seas, into which they shall find entrance or passage, by water or land, out of the territories, limits, or places aforesaid, and to and with all the natives and people inhabiting, or which sliall inhabit, within the territories, limits and places afore- said, and to and with all other nations inliabiting any of the coasts adjacent to the said territories, limits, and places which are not already possessed as afore- said, or whereof the sole liberty and traffic is not granted to any other of our subjects." ^ That was the origin of the Hudson's Bay Company, wliich, by vir- tue of its charter, has had, for nearly two centuries, the ownership of more than three million square miles of land, an area nearly half as large as that of Eussia, thrice as large as that of India. The Company lost no time in making use of its privileges, though the extent of its operations was strangely disproportionate to the vastness of its ter- ritory. A settlement was promptly formed at Eupert Eiver, near the southern corner of Hudson's Bay, and stations and factories were founded in its neigh- bourhood for carrying on a trade in furs with the Indian tribes there resident. Tlie trade was ^ Anderson, " History of Commerce, " vol. iii. p. 514. I 130 THE HUDSON'S BAY TERRITORY. very profitable, yielding sometimes as much as fifty per cent, profit in a year; and this in spite of the violent opposition offered to it by the French in Canada, who claimed the exclusive possession of these districts. In 1682 and 1686, and again in 1692, 1694, 1696, and 1697, the Company's forts were attacked, and some of them destroyed, by expeditions from Quebec ; and in the latter year, by the Treaty of Eyswick, part of the territory was ceded to the French. It was restored to the Hudson's Bay Com- pany, however, by the Treaty of Utrecht in 1713, and after that no serious resistance was offered to its pro- gress. In 1730 the Company brought home more than fifteen thousand beaver-skins, and nearly as many skins of martins, otters, foxes, wolves, and bears. " The Hudson's Bay trade," it was said in 1731, " employs generally three ships from London, carry- ing thither coarse duffle cloth or blanketing, powder and shot, spirits, &c. ; and, in return, brings home vast quantities of peltry of many kinds, bed-feathers, whale-fins, &c. And as that small Company m ikes a large dividend of eight, or formerly ten, per cent. on their capital of £100,000, besides the employment it gives to our people in fitting out and loading those ships, it may truly be said to be an advan- tageous commerce."^ JMore than a hundred years ago, however, it was urged in Parliament that this commerce ought to bs more advantageous. "The Company's four fac- tories," it was said in 1749 by one of its agents, " con- tain only one hundred and thirty servants, and two small houses with only eight men in each. There Audei'son, vol. iii. jip. 1C7, 233. PROGRESS OF THE COMPANY. Wi are incontestible evidences of rich copper and lead mines ; yet the Company gives no encouragement for working them, nor for their servants going into the inland countries. If tlie least evidence had been suffered to transpire that the climate is very habit- able, the soil rich and fruitful, fit both for corn and for cattle, rich in mines, and the fisheries capable of great improvements, the legislature would have taken the right into its own hands, and would have settled the country, and laid the trade open for the benefit of Britain. The Company, therefore, have contented themselves with dividing a large profit upon a small capital amongst only about one hundred persons, and have not only endeavoured to keep the true state of the trade and country an impenetrable secret, but have also industriously propagated the worst impres- sions of them."^ Parliament, however, decided that the rights of the Hudson's Bay Company were indis- putable, and that it must be allowed to carry on its trade as it judged best for its own interests. But its exclusive privileges were again, and this time successfully, disputed about fifty years after- wards. A North-West Company was founded with powers to carry on its trade in the unused portions of the Hudson's Bay Company's Territory. The Quebec Fur Company, moreover, established even be- fore the Hudson's Bay Company, and which had long confined its operations to commerce with the Indians bordering upon Canada, now became more active. The rivalship of the three Companies led to a great extension of our acquaintance with the distant parts of North America, and intercourse with its natives. ^ Anderson, vol. iii. p. 271. 132 THE Hudson's bay terkitory. The trade in furs, that had hitherto been chiefly limited to the regions about Hudson's Bay, was pursued in the far west. Exploring parties were formed, and by them fertilising rivers and fruitful plains were discovered in quarters never before visited ; and in some of these districts vahiable fac- tories and strong forts were built. The feuds of the rival Companies, sometimes issuing even in bloodshed, greatly lessened their profits, but caused a vast in- crease of their operations. The feuds died out, but not the enterprise, with the fusion of the North- West Company in the Hudson's Bay Company in 1821 ; and by that time the general character of the immense territory was tolerably understood and, to some extent, rightly valued. In 1847 the Hudson's Bay Company, with a capital of £400,000 in the hands of two hundred and thirty- nine proprietors, had a hundred and thirty six separate establishments, extending east and west from Labrador and the Atlantic Ocean to British Columbia and the Pacific Ocean; and north and south from the boun- daries of Canada and the United States up to Baffin's Bay and the Arctic Ocean. Its factors, clerks, and servants, stationed at these settlements, then num- bered about fourteen hundred, and their business was to trade with the Indian population, scattered over the vast area, which was supposed to amount to about ninety thousand. " The trade in America," said an impartial and well-informed citizen of the United States, in 1844, "is especially directed by a resident governor, who occasionally visits and inspects all the principal forts. Under him, as officers, are chief factors, chief traders, and clerks, for the most part THE company's FACTORIES. 133 natives of North Britain, and an army of regular servants, Gmployed as hunters, traders, and voyageurs, nearly all of them Canadians or half-breeds. The number of all these persons is small when compared with the duties they have to perform ; but the manner in which they are admitted into the service, and the training to which they are subjected, are such as to render their efficiency and their devotion to the general interests as great as possible. The strictest discipline, regularity, and economy are enforced in every part of the Company's territories ; and the magistrates appointed under the Act of Parliament for the preservation of tranquillity are seldom called to exercise their functions, except in the settlement of trifling disputes. In the treatment of the aborigines of the countries under its control the Hudson's Bay Company appears to have admirably reconciled policy with humanity. The prohibition to suj)ply these people with ardent spirits appears to be rigidly enforced. Schools for the instruction of the native children are established at all the principal trading forts, each of which also contains an hospital for sick Indians, and offers employment for those who are disposed to work whilst hunting cannot be carried on. Missionaries of various sects are encouraged to endeavour to convert them to Christianity, and to induce them to adopt the usages of civilized life, so far as may be consistent with the nature of the labours required for their support; and attempts are made, at great expense, to coUect the Indians in villages, on tracts where the climate and soil are most favourable for agriculture. It is, however, to be observed that, of the whole teiTitory, only a few small portions are 134 TUE Hudson's bay tereitoey. capable of being rendered productive by agi'iculture, From the remainder nothing of value can be obtained excepting furs, and those articles can be procured in greater quantities and at less cost than by any other means." ^ But the " few small portions " of the great Hudson's Bay Territory comprise districts almost as large as England, while others have been proved to be rich in other sorts of wealth, tiU lately never dreamt of. The stations of the Company, most plentiful about Hudson's Bay, but also distributed over the country stretching westward for more than two thoiisand miles, serve as small centres of civilization in the midst of wide areas of forest desolation. "They are built usually in the form of a square, or nearly so, of about a hundred yards. This space is picketed in with logs of timber, driven into the ground, and rising fifteen or twenty feet above it. In two of the corners is usually reared a wooden bastion, sufficiently high to enable the garrison to see a considerable dis- tance over the country. In the gallery of the bastion five or six small guns, 6 or 12 pounders, are mounted, covered in and used with regular ports, like those of a ship, while the ground-floor serves for tlio magazine. Inside the pickets are six or eight houses ; one con- taining the mess room for the officers of the fort, and their dwelling-house when the number of them is small; two or three others — the number of course depending on the strength of the fort, which seldom exceeds a dozen men — being devoted to the trappers, voyageurs, etc. Another serves for the Indian trad- ing store, and one for the furs, which remain in store ^ Green how, "History of Oregon and California." THE company's FACTORIES. 135 at the inland forts during the greater part of the year."^ Near each station one or two Indian villages are generally to be found. Other villages are far away from English settlements. Of the aborigines, when they have not been maddened by the strong drink which white men have tauglit them to love, most travellers speak well. " The Indian," we are told by two who, in 1862 and 18G3, travelled all across the Hudson's Bay Territory, "is constantly engaged in hunting to supply his family with food ; and when that is scarce he will set out without any provision for himself, and often travel from morning to night for days before he finds the game he seeks. Then, loaded with meat, he toils home again, and, whilst the plenty lasts, considers himseK entitled to complete rest after his exertions. This self-denial of the men, and their wonderful endurance of hunger, is illustrated by the case of one hunter who, several years ago, narrowly escaped death by starvation. That winter buffalo did not come up to the woods, and moose and fish were very scarce. After killing his horses, one after another, when driven to the last extremity, the family found themselves at length without resource. The hunter, leaving with his wife and son a scanty rem- nant of dried horseflesh, hunted for two days without success, and at last, faint and still fasting, with diffi- culty dragged himself home. All now made up their minds to die ; for the hunter became unable to move, and his wife and boy too helpless to procure food. After being eight days longer without tasting food, * Mayne, "Four Years in British Columbia and Vancouver Island,"?. 117. 136 THE Hudson's bay territory. and exposed to the fierce cold of winter, they were fortunately discovered by some of the Company's voyageurs, by whose careful attention they were with difficulty brought round." ^ Different from the other stations of the Hudson's Bay Company is the Eed Eiver Settlement, begun in 1813, with Fort Garry for its capital. Here, within easy reach of Canada and the United States, its first experimenl; of colonization was made, and with con- siderable success. An agricultural population of five thousand occupied the district in 1843. It is now twice as numerous, being composed chiefly of civilized Indians or half-breeds, with a mixture of Canadians, Englishmen, and colonists from the continent of Europe. Two other and much more important settlements, the colonies of British Columbia and Vancouver Island, have since grown up on the most western limits of the Hudson's Bay Territory. Some part of the district now knov»n as British Columbia had been visited by Sir Francis Drake in the course of his famous voyage round the world, and many later adventurers had visited its Pacific coast-line and the neighbouring islands during the two following centuries. But the formidable barrier of the Eoclcy Mountains deterred the Hudson's Bay Company from making use of this portion of its territory until recent times. In 1804 it established a fur- trading station at Fort George, on Eraser Eiver, in New Caledonia, and soon other factories were opened in the neigh- bourhood. These proving successful, it extended its ^ Viscount Milton and Dr Cheadle, "The North-'West Passage by Land." BlUTlSn COLUMBIA AND VANCOUVER ISLAND. 137 operations and erected a trading fort near the site of Victoria, in Vancouver Island, in 1843, and the great natural resources of the island soon suggested more extensive colonizing ■work. In 1847 it asked permis- sion of the British Government to pursue this work in an orderly way. The permission was given, and in 1848 Vancouver Island was assigned to the Hudson's Bay Company for ten years. The discovery of the Cali- fornia gold-lields brought many settlers to this quarter of the world, and some of them, preferring the quiet of agricultural life to the turmoil of the district of gold-mines, went northward to Vancouver Island and British Columbia. Thus their colonization was begun, soon to be rapidly augmented. In 1857 British ( yolumbia was also found to be rich in gold, and immediately a tide of immigration set in. Victoria, hitherto a quiet village, became suddenly a busy port, through whicli, in the course of four months, twenty thousand adventurers passed on their way to the new El Dorado. Both the island and the mainland were then taken out of the hands of the Hudson's Bay Company, which was in no way adapted for the con- trol of settlements promising to become so important, and the separate colonies of British Columbia and Vancouver Island were formed. In 1866 they were united under one administration, designed to meet the requirements of the new England growing up on the northern shores of the Pacific. The surrender of these youngest colonies of Eng- land by the Hudson's Bay Company was only the prelude to its entire dissolution. Started when monopolies were common, if not necessary for the development of British commerce and civilization — V 138 THE HUDSON'S BAY TERKITOKY. the greatest and most fruitful monopoly of all being the East India Company — it outlived all other insti- tutions of its kind. It did its work as worthily and honestly as could be expected of it. But the same necessities which led to the blending of the various British North American colonies in the Canadian Confederation rendered inexpedient the longer exist- ence of the Hudson's Bay Company. In 1868 an Act was passed by the British Parliament author- izing the transfer of all the vast territories vaguely described in Charles ii.'s days as Prince Eupert's Land to the dominion of Canada. CHAPTER XL BRITISH NORTH AMERICA. A GENERAL VIEW OF THE BRITISH NORTH AMERICAN COLONIES — piuxcE Edward's island — cape hketon — nova scotia — NEW BRUNSWICK— CANADA — THE WESTERN TERRITORIES — BRITISH COLUMBIA AND VANCOUVER ISLAND. [1869.] F our North American colonies, the elder, grouped on the western side of the con- tinent, have already been united in the Canadian Confederation. Between them and their younger sisters in the distant east, there intervenes a wide tract of land, of which no adequate use has yet been made. When the intervening space has been bridged over, the English possessions in this quarter will form a belt nearly three thousand miles in length, and, at its widest part, about half as broad, occupying about four million square miles, which, whether it be united under one rule or not, will be closely bound together by community of interests, and, amid many differences, by physical resem- blances. Of this region, in its natural and artificial aspects, a comprehensive view will here be given. Excluding Nevv'foundland, which, as a great fish- ing-station and not much else, stands alone, British North America begins with the mainland and islands that lie on either side of the Gulf and Eiver of St Lawrence. On the northern side is Labrador, still almost unexplored, but of too barren an appearance 139 140 BKITISH NORTH AMERICA. to promise much benefit from its use, save as a liaunt for fishermen on the coast, and a resort of i'ur-traders in the interior. On the southern side is the fair Acadian land of the old French settlers, including Cape Breton and Prince Edward's Island, Nova Scotia, and New Brunswick. Prince Edward's Island, which had in 1866 a population of about 90,000 spread over an area of 2173 square miles, about the size of Norfolk, lies l)leasantly in the bay which skirts New Brunswick and Nova Scotia. A narrow and irregular strip of land, it contains numberless small bays, abounding in fish, of which little use is made, and offering con- venient harbourage for far more shipping than fre- quents its shores. The dense forests with which it once abounded have been partly destroyed by fires, and other parts have been cleared to make room for the pastoral and agricultural pursuits which the island especially invites. The forests that remain furnish material for the ship-building that has long been a favourite and lucrative pursuit of the inhabitants. " In few places," it was said twenty years ago, " have there been greater chauges of fortune. A person who came from England in the capacity of a cook was employed in a ship-yard, and recently his former master was among the number of his servants. He now owns extensive tracts of land and farms, mills of different kinds, and a great variety of other pro- perty. During the past year he has built no less than ten ships, and loaded them with timber for Great Britain. He is a man of influence, and has several times been elected a member of the House of Assembly. There are not thirty words in his voca- PKINCE EDWAKD'a ISLAND; CAl'E BUETOX. 141 bulary, yet all his sayings and doings are charac- terized by sound sense and correct judgment."^ If some new-comers to Prince Edward's Island, how- ever, lack education, exemplary care is taken to pro- vide it for their children. A fifth of its revenue of about £50,000 is so sp'-nt; and in Charlotte-town, the capital, it is said " there are almost more semi- naries than loads to tliem." Cape Breton, an island about half as large as Yorkshire, divided from Nova Scotia by a naiTOw channel which is in one part only a mile wide, and nearly parted into two islands by an inlet, which at its end leaves only a few miles of land, lies to the east of Prince Edward's Island. Its northern and larger half is wild and mountainous. The southern part is an undulating plain, crowded with bays and streams, and terminating in high cliffs which form a rocky barrier to the Atlantic Ocean on the south-eastern shore. In it are most of the dwellers in the island. Sydney, the capital, is beautifully situated at the head of a bay which forms a safe harbour for the ships that frequent it, and that will be much more numerous when proper use is made of the resources of the island. Noble forests offer an unlimited supply of timber, which, with agricultural produc- tions, long formed the staple exports of Cape Breton. In later times profit has also been derived from the two coal mines which have been opened at a con- venient distance from the capital, both being con- nected with the vast bed which passes under the sea to the north-eajitward and appears in Nev-foundland. Besides the two veins that are worked in the island, 1 Martin, vol. i. p. 240. 142 BlIITISII NORTH AMERICA. twelve otliers wait to be made use of. Immense deposits of gypsum, and numerous salt-springs, also occur among the red sandstone rock, of which a great part of the island is composed. Eed sandstone and coal also abound, as well as granite, in the adjoining mainland of Nova Scotia and New Brunswick. Nova Scotia, more than twice as large as Wales, having an area of 15,617 square miles, is an oblong, about 200 miles long and some 50 broad, connected with New Brunswick by a narrow isthmus. Its undulating surface, marked by no high hills, is varied by countless bays and creeks along the shore, and inland by numerous lakes and several rivers. The chosen home of the French Acadians, its population has to this day maintained much of the character of those first settlers and their offspring. Agricultural and pastoral employments render life too easy for the other resources of the country to be quickly developed, and still about a fourth of its 300,000, or more, inhabitants are so em- ployed. Other ways of wealth, however, have lately been opened up. The ash, beech, birch, maple, oak, pine, and spruce, that throng its forests, have not only helped to stock the timber market of Europe, but have been extensively employed in ship-building in the colony itself, and especially in the fine harbour of Halifax, chosen by Great Britain as its chief naval station in North America. The discovery of coal and iron has also led both to a quickened foreign trade, and to the establishment of many local manufac- tories, and a further stimulus has lately appeared in the finding of gold in the colony. This new attrac- tion, if over-estimated in itself, is beneficial in its KOVA SCOTIA; NEW BKUNSWIUK. 143 encourajrement of colonization and enterprise of other sorts. Thirty new mining,' companies were started in Nova Scotia in 1SG8. The exports, which in 1827 were valued at £207,277, had risen to £831,071 in 1847, and to £1,133,001 in 1808. The imports, which in 1827 were worth £810,819, amounted in 1847 to £1,031,953, and in 1808 to £1,902,341. Wliilo both have thus been largely augmented, the greater development of the export trade, being twice as rapid as that in imports, shows that the colony has learnt better how to feed and clothe itself, as well as how to profit by the requirements of other portions of the world. " Prior to 1824," said one of its recent governors. Sir John Harvey, " the foreign trade of Nova Scotia was very limited, but the changes in the commercial policy of the empire opened a wider field for enterprise, of which the North Americans were not slow to avail themselves. Nova Scotia vessels, besides their traffic with the neighbouring states and the "West Indies, now trade to the Baltic, the Medi- terranean, China, the Mauritius, the East Indies, the Brazils, and Havannah, and our merchants and mariners are fast acquiring an accurate acquaintance with distant seas, and in every part of the world." ^ In 1868, 252,700 tons of coal were exported from Nova Scotia. New Brunswick, an almost square block of land between Nova Scotia and Canada, containing 27,037 square miles, and nearly as large as Scotland, has not improved as rapidly. Its population, Avhich was 156,102 in 1840, v.as only 252,047 in 1801. Its magnificent stores of coal, iron, copper, and other 1 Nova Scotia Blue Book, 1847, 144 BRITISH NORTH AMERICA. minerals are still but little used, and its chief trade is in the timber that abounds in its vast and rarely traversed forests. Its least used and most beautiful districts are in the north-west, watered by the Eis- tigouche and its tributaries. "Wherever the eye wanders nothing is to be seen but an almost incalcul- able number of lofty hills, interspersed with lakes, rivers, and waterfalls, glens, and valleys. Some of the mountains are clothed with the tall and beautiful pine. Others sustain a fine growth of hard wood. Many have swampy summits, and several terminate in rich meadows and plains. Sometimes the precipi- tous banks of the Eistigouche are three hundred feet above its bed; and at every bend, which is about once in six miles, the voyager is deceived with the appear- ance of entering a w^ell-sheltered lake. But, at about seventy miles from the sea, the country becomes com- paratively level, and all the way to the head of the river is a fine, bold, open territory, consisting of a rich upland, skirted with large tracts of intervale, and covered with a dense growth of mixed wood, in which large groves of pine are very conspicuous."^ Of the same wild character is tlie strip of Canadian land that lies between New Brunswick and the southern bank of the St Lawrence; while so much of the northern shore as is included in Canada shares to some extent the bleak and rugged aspect of Labrador. Xeither of these sections of Lower Canada has yet been put to much use, save by the Hudson's Bay Compan}% some of whose forts have grown into towns or villages along the banks of the river, here a noble estuary, from thirty to forty miles wide. — : ' Mr.itin, vol. i. p. 2?>0. CANADA EAST. 145 Busy Canada begins about a hundred miles east of Quebec, near tlie mouth of the Saguenay. Thence along the banks of the river, ou either side, there appears an almost continuous line of vilLiges and towns extending to Lake Ontario, the southern bank, soon after Montreal is passed, being the pro- perty of the United States. " The country below and above Quebec, for some distance, presents scenery whose beauty is unequalled in America, and probably in the world. From the eminence over which the post-road passes, or in sailing up the St Lawrence, there are frequent prospects- of immense extent and variety, consisting of lofty mountains, wide valleys, bold headlands, luxuriant forests, cul- tivated fields, pretty villages and settlements, some of them stretching up along the mountains, fertile islands, rocky islets, and tributary rivers ; while ou the bosom of the St Lawrence, with a breadth vary- ing from ten to twenty miles, ships, brigs, and schooners, with innumerable pilot-boats and river- craft in active motion, charm the eye of the traveller. The scenery on approaching Quebec is truly magni- ficent ; on the left. Point Levi, with its romantic church and cottages ; on the right, the western part of Orleans Isle, which closely resembles our own Devonshire coast. Beyond, the lofty mainland opens to view, and the spectator's attention is rivetted by the magnificent falls of Montmorency — a river as large as the Thames at Kichmond — which precipitates its vast volume of constantly flowing waters over a per- pendicular precipice two hundred and forty feet in height. The eye then ruus along miles of richly cultivated country, terminating in a ridge of moun- K 146 BRITISH NORTH AMERICA. tains, with the city and battlements of Quebec, rising in the form of an amphitheatre, cresting, as it were, the ridge of Cape Diamond, and majestically tower- ing above the surrounding country, as if destined to be the capital of an empire."^ From Quebec the panorama continues, with less grandeur, for about two hundred miles, when INIon- treal is reached, a city larger and handsomer than Quebec, though with fewer natural or artificial de- fences. It stands on an island in the middle of the St Lawrence. Here the river ceases to be navigable by large vessels ; but it passes through scenery as grand as is found on the eastern side of Quebec, till it reaches Kingston, where the waters widen into Lake Ontario, to contract again at the famous Falls of Niagara, opposite to which is the noble city of Toronto ; and beyond it, fed by the same river, under different names, are Lakes Erie, Huron, and Superior. There Canada ends, and the waters cease to be a boundary between British America and the L'nited States. Northward of this splendid barrier are lofty moun- tains and fertile plains, dense forests, and varied lakes and rivers, as far as the sliores of Hudson's Bay. LTpper Canada, less mountainous than the eastern province, is for the most part a vast plain, diversified by hills, and covered with luxuriant vege- tation. Wheat and other grain are cultivated where the noble forests have been removed ; but forest- land, containing maple, beech, oak, baywood, elm, hickory, walnut, chestnut, cherry, birch, cedar, and pine, all of largest growth, abound. " The autumnal * Martin, vol. i. p. 56. CANADA WEST. 147 tints of these forests, even on cloudy days, are so brilliant that the yellow leaves give the impression of sunsliine, each leaf presenting a point of sparkling gold. The hues change from day to day, and pink, lilac, vermilion, parple, deep blue and brown, com- bine to form a jrorcreous mass of colouring that sur- passes imagination. Even the decay of the aged and fallen trees is concealed by a mantle of gera- uiams, honeysuckles, foxgloves, and flowers."^ Timber, thus furnished in such profusion, is still the staple article of Canadian commerce, being chiefly collected in the far west, and floated eastward along the course of the Ottawa. The pine and other wood exported in the last half of 1866 and the first of 1867, by Canada, Nova Scotia, and New Brunswick, was valued at £2,789,729, half of it being dispatched to Great Britain, and more than twice as much was reserved for use in the colony as material for ship and house building, and as fuel. In the same period the exports of fish and oil from the districts of Ontario and Quebec amounted to £950,000. Very much larger was the value of the wheat, oats, rye, and barley sent abroad. The total exports were worth £12,983,055, of which less than a third reached the United Kingdom, while from it came more than half of the imports, estimated at £16,806,157. The bene- fits of this trade appertained to a population of over three and a half millions, of whom four-fifths were in the provinces of Canada, In 1861 the poi:>ulation of Montreal was 90,323; of Quebec; 51,109; of Toronto, 44,821 ; of Hamilton, 19,096 ; of Ottawa, 14,696 ; of Kingston, 13,743 ; and of London, 11,555. * Somerville, " Physical Geograplij'," p. Hi. 148 BRITISH NORTH AMERICA. To tlie north and north-west of Canada is a vast extent of wilderness, the hunting-ground of the Hud- son's Bay Company, gradually becoming more barren and inaccessible as it approaches the Arctic Eegion. To the west, south of Lake Winnipeg, is the hardly defined and yet feebly developed Eed Eiver settle- ment; and beyond it is a huge prairie-land, compris- ing some 65,000 square miles, about as large as Great Britain, which is waiting to become another colony. In it, it is reckoned, are at least 40,000,000 acres of the richest soil, well watered, and blessed with a temperate climate. This is the district of Saskat- chewan, destined to be nearly useless until brought into communication either with Canada on the east, or with British Columbia on the other side of the Eocky Mountains. British Columbia, stretching from the Eocky !Moun- tains to the Pacific, and from the United States boundary-line to the territory lately ceded to the United States by Eussia, forms something like an oblong block about 600 miles long and nearly 400 broad. With Vancouver Island, which in size and shape nearly resembles Nova Scotia, and in climate and fertility is said to be on a par with England, it comprises about 220,000 square miles. Both the mainland ana the island have rapidly acquired im- portance in recent years through the discovery of gold in the ont, and the convenience of the port of Victoria in the other as a halting-place for travellers in search of the glittering treasure. But both, and especially Vancouver Island, are rich in timber, coal, copper, iron, and other natural commodities, and are admirably adapted for agricultural pursuits. BKJTISII COLUMBIA AND VAXCOUVER ISLAND. 149 Of the two colonies Vancouver is more interesting tlian British Coliunbia. About 250 nailes long to 70 broad, and apparently quite covered with pine forests, except where the frequent conflagrations have laid bare surfaces some miles in extent, the island has for tlie traveller who first approaches it a strange and gloomy interest, which is increased when he proceeds to examine it in detail. Plant? and animals are, for the most part, similar to those with which Eng- lishmen are ftvmiliar ; but their immense number and predominance over the whole district greatly alter the impression made by them. Outside Victoria and the few other settlements the European colonists have as yet set v-jry little of their mark; and the wild Indians, wandering from place to place, or lodg- ing in flimsy huts, in no degree occupy the place proper to man as master of nature. These Indian tribes have the same high cheek- bones, broad flat faces, long black hair and copper complexion, as their kinsmen on the continent ; but the men of some tribes are taller and stronger. They are described by travellers as being nearly all equally barbarous, greater strength of body only coming in aid of the same ferocity of mind. Individuals have deadly strifes with one another; tribes maintain hereditary feuds. "Treachery and artifice," we are told, "constitute the base of their tactics in war. They appear insensible to anything like cliivalry or generous feeling, killing and slaying with remorseless cruelty, undeterred by any sentiment of compunc- tion." They build huts with posts and beams, often large and commodious, but always so fitted as to be easily transferred from one place to another. Their 150 BRITISH NOUTII AMERICA. dress consists of a ulaiiket tied round tlie body with " strips of bark, and their tattooing is sometimes really ornamental. Tliey are skilful huntsmen and excel- lent fishermen, and in the art of cooking salmon, of which fish good specimens are everywhere to be met with, they claim to be connoisseurs. "The true Indian method of cooking a salmon consists in putting it into a wooden bowl with water, which is made to boil by dropping in red-hot stones." The canoes, in the manufacture of which they show con- siderable skill, not only are so much used in lifetime that no Indian when out of them can move his limbs in a graceful way, but also generally serve as tombs for the dead. Often each tribe finds a little rocky island at a short distance from the coast, and thither the canoe, freighted with its owner's corpse and his principal weapons and other articles, is taken, to be dragged on shore, and left. Among some tribes it is the practice to place their dead in boxes upon the branches of trees ; and with a few others incremation is said to be the rule.-^ Victoria, the capital of Vancouver Island, is favourably placed on the south-eastern corner of the island, and seems destined to become a sufficient rival to San Francisco, as a great mart for trade along the shores of the Pacific Ocean, and across it, to China and the East Indies. Its population has increased in ten years from about 500 to considerably more than 5000. Many stories are told of the rapid money- making of its inhabitants. " There is a person," it was said in 1865, "luxuriating in. England at the ' " Travels in British Columbia and round Vancouver's Island," by Captain C. E. Barret-Lennard. BEITISH COLUMBIA AND VANCOUVER ISLAND. 151 present moment, who went to the island as a poor ship's carpenter. "VMien the rush of immigration came in 1858, he and his wife were living behind the har of a small piihlic-honse, the resort of sailors. He bought about £40 or £G0 worth of property after he arrived, wliich now brings him the handsome income of £4000 per annum. Another inhabitant brought to the country £60 in 1857, and the land he pur- chased with that amount now realises to him £80 a month." ^ Esquimault is another thriving town in Vancouver Island, and New Westminster (founded in 1860) is the capital of British Columbia. The revenue of Vancouver Island in 1862 was £24,000 ; in 1863, £30,000; in 1864, £38,000; and in 1866, £89,000. The revenue of British Columbia, about £18,000 in 1859, was £36,000 in 1861, £56,000 in 1863, and £90,000 in 1866, In the latter year the imports of both colonies amounted to about £900,000 ; and the exports to more than £1,200,000, of wliich five-sixths were bullion. The vast and varied treasures of these youngest colonial possessions of England are still almost wholly undeveloped. The rush of gold-seekers, while leading the way to healthier colonization, has, at the same time, presented obstacles thereto. Eeckless adventurers have introduced lawless ways which hinder the progress of quiet settlers. The experiences of travellers and emigrants show that both British Columbia and Vancouver Island offer wonderful advantages for settlers; but neither they nor any other portions of the world can afford comfortable resting-places for those who desire more than may be ^ Macfie, "Vancouver Island and British Columbia," p. 89, 152 BRITISU NORTH AMEiaCA, fairly earned by tLeir own brains and hands. Those who seek for gold have the chance of rapid fortune, but also the chance of starvation and of moral ruin. But the patient and persevering miner will find ample stores of copper, iron, and coal, always surer sources of wealth than the more precious mineral ; and to another class of emigrant, the man witli manufacturing talent, there is a wide field of pros- perity. The plentiful timbers of the island, joined to its other resources, offer strong inducements to the shipbuilder ; and when good colonial ships are built, they can never lack cargoes of raw material, for which Asia and Europe will gladly pay in articles of food and clothing, cheaper and better than the native market can produce. That is a state of things not to be brought about in a day, nor in a few years ; l)ut if patient industry is employed, it must needs arrive in its due time. It w^ill be facilitated — and the whole prospects of British iNorth America, bright already, will be brightened — by the opening up of a convenient road, and ultimately of a railway, extending l' er the whole vast territory from east to west. Thereby free inter- change of commodities will be made possible, and our American colonies can vie with the United States in their new and splendid enterprise of con- structing a pathway for commerce and civilization, across the great continent and the two great oceans that bound it, between Euiope and the Indies. CHAPTER XII. WEST AFRICA. THE WEST AFRICAN SETTLEMENTS — SIERRA LEONE — GAMBIA - CAPE COAST CASTLE — LAGOS. [1600-18G9.] LMOST tlie earliest voyages of discovery undertaken by the English were along the African coast, and with the savage tribes of the western shore they very soon began a rude trade, in which cheap trinkets and gewgaws were bartered for ivory and the few other commodities possessed by the natives. But until a century ago there was no attempt at regular coloni- zation, and the inhospitable districts were chiefly frequented in order that their natives and the cap- tives brought by them from the interior might be boucrht or stolen, and taken as slaves to the West Indian settlements. Sir John Hawkins was the first slave-trader ; and Queen Elizabeth, while sanctioning the commerce, is said to have declared that "it would be detestable, and call down the vengeance of Heaven upon the undertakers." Cape Coast Castle was erected as a well-protected haunt for these traders early in the seventeenth century; and soon afterwards James Fort, near the Gambia, became another factory for the English, who long maintained a fierce rivalry with the Spaniards, French, and Dutch. In 1787 it was guessed that up to that time ten million negroes 1S3 154 WEST AFRICA. had been thus taken from Africa, the rate of expor- tation being then a hundred thousand a year. More than a third of the trade was then in the hands of the English. Tlien it was tliat Chxrkson, Wilbcr- force, and others began the popular opposition whicli ended in the suppression of the slave-trade, as far as law and an armed force could suppress it, in 1808. After that the English had more time to attend to their West African possessions, although as colonics there is still little to be said about them. These possessions are in four groups. Sierra Leone, the district first visited by Hawkins, is, by reason of its unhealthy climate, abandoned by all Europeans who are not actually forced to reside in it. Among its population of some 50,000, half of them being in Free Town, the capital, there are scarcely more than a hundred whites. The hardly less un- healthy district of the Gambia, also, is only visited by the few Englishmen who are required to superin- tend and make capital out of the growing trade carried on by the black settlers, numbering about 12,000, with the native tribes, in which European commodities are exchanged for ground-nuts and palm-oil. The Gold Coast, with Cape Coast Castle for its centre, alone invites white residents, and these are chiefly missionaries, augmented by a floating population of merchants. An extensive territory is kept under subjection to the British; and, as the name implies, the chief attraction to Europeans is the gold here collected in small quantities. Besides gold dust, there is commerce in palm-oil, gum, and ivory, bartered chiefly for clothing, rum, and gun- powder. A fourth and more hopeful settlement is at OUR NEGRO COLONIES, 155 Lagos, in the 'Bi;.i;lit of P-onin, wliicli became a British possession in 18G1. Its healthier climate renders it a fitter dwelling-jilace tor Europeans, and it offers advantages for trade in the lead ore, indigo, and cam- wood that al)ound in the interior, and fur cultivation of cotton along tlie coast. The population of all these settlements, including tributary tribes of Africans, was in 186G about 200,000; and their exports and imports were each valued at about £000,000. Xo other colonial possessions of England have so unwelcome a history or offer such few attractions to visitors, save those of travel among barbarous races and effort to improve their state by means of Clms- tianity and civilization. Here, however, there is some encouragement. "After many years' intercourse with the race," said the governor of Gambia in 18GG, " I cannot see in the African any incapacity for civi- lization. On the contrary, I am convinced that the liberated Africans contain in themselves all the ele- ments of a commercial people."^ 1 Colonial Governors' Reports, 18G7, part ii. p. 17. CHAPTEE XIII. CAPE COLONY. THE DTJTCn SETTLEMENT ON THE CAPE OF GOOD HOPE — EARLY QUARRELS ■WITH THE HOTTENTOTS AND CRUEL TREATMENT OF THEM — TRANSFER OF THE COLONY TO ENGLAND — ITS PROGRESS TINDER BRITISH TIULE — THE KAFFIEWARS AND OTHER TROUBLES — THE PRESENT CONSTITUTION OF THE COLONY — ITS NATURAL ADVANTAGES. [1648-1809.] HE Cape of Good Hope, called by him the Cape of Storms, was discovered by Bar- tholomew Diaz, a Portuguese, in 1494; and it was froiu this time often vis:' tod by later voyagers, who followed in the track of Vasco de Gama, and sailed round the coast of Africa in their search for the treasures of the East Indies. But its colonization was not thought of till a century and a half later. In 1648 a Dutch vessel, the Haarlem, on its way to India, was wrecked upon the coast. Its crew, forced to reside there for some months, sent home so favour- able an account of the district, and so strongly urged the advantage of a settlement at which vessels, pass- ing to and from the east, might halt and gain refresh- ment, that their suggestion was adopted by the Dutch East India Company. Seventy or eighty soldiers, peasants and convicts, under Jan van Riebeeck, arrived in Table Bay in April 1652, and by them a 156 FIRST VISIT0E8 TO THE CAI'E. 157 ■w'oodcn shed was erected on the -ite of Cape Town. The natives welcomed them ; and, amid many ditti- culties caused by their appearance in the winter season, when food was scarce and wild Leasts roamed over the district, a little colony was funned, which, augmented by fresh arrivals from Holland, numbered in 1858 three hundred and sixty persons. The first difficulties, however, were soon followed by others of the colonists' own making. "With the Hottentot natives they were at first well pleased ; but very soon they claimed more from them than they cared to give, and the first " insolence," as it was termed, was fiercely resented. The insolence was in the same sort of cattle-lifting which has been a source of trouble ever since. Van Eiebeeck, having caught a man in this act, questioned him as to his motive, and was told by him, as he reported, " that it was for no other reason than because they saw we were breaking up the best land and grass where their cattle were accustomed to graze, trying to establish ourselves every-\vhere, with houses and farms, as if we were never more to move, but designed to take up our per- manent occupation more and more of this Cape Colony, which had belonged to them from time immemorial, — ay, so that their cattle could not get at the water without passing over the corn land, \^hicli we would not allow them to do." Van Eiebeeck considered that cattle-stealing was "a matter most displeasing to the Almighty when committed by such men as they were;" but saw no harm in the land- stealing resorted to by such men as he. Therefore in 1659 he made war upon the Hottentots with a hundred and thirty of his colonists; and with the help 158 CAPE COLONY. of some bloodshed and " a little torture," pimished them for their iniquity. Tliat first quarrel was the parent of others that need not be detailed. The colony greAv steadily but not rapidly. Dutch farmers ploughed the land and sowed and reaped the wheat which it yielded in abundance, and, in spite of the frequent depredations of the natives, made profit out of great herds of sheep and cows; and gradually the Hottentots were driven further and further inland, away from " their birth- place and their own land, full of pure water, after which their hearts longed," as they had caid in one complaint against the encroachments of the colonists. In 1759, a century and a quarter after it was started, the Cape settlement contained 9782 Europeans, of whom only 148 G were women, and 8104 slaves. Of the way in which these slaves were caught and treated, a precise account is given by a Dutch tra- veller who resided in the colony between 1772 and 1 776. " Several persons that are in want of servants join together and take a journey to that part of the country where the Bushmen live. They endeavour to spy out where the Bushmen have their haunts. They are found in societies from ten to fifty or a hundred, reckoning old and young together. On ? dark night the farmers set themselves on them, stationing themselves at some distance about the kraal. They then give the alarm by firing a gun or t-wo. By this means there is such a consternation spread over the whole body of these savages that oidy the most bold and intelligent among them have the courage to break through the circle and steal off. These the cajitors are glad enough to get rid of in so THE DUTCH AND THE HOTTENTOTS. 139 easy a manner; those that are stupid and timorous, and allow themselves to be carried into bondage, best answering their purpose. If a colonist at any time gets sight of a Bushman he fires immediately, and spirits up his horses and dogs in order to hunt him, with more ardour and fury than he would a wolf or any other wild beast. The slave business is exercised by the colonists towards the nation of Bushmen with a cruelty which merits the abhorrence of every one, though I have been told that they pride themselves in it ; and not only is the capture of a Hottentot considered by them as a work of pleasure, but in cold blood they destroy the bonds which nature has knit between husband and wife, and betAveen parents and children. I have known some colonists not only, for a trifling neglect, deliberately flay both the backs and limbs of their slaves by a peculiar, slow, lingering process, but even, jutdoing the very tigers in cruelty, throw pepper and salt over the wounds. Many a time have I seen unhappy slaves, who, with the most dismal cries and lamentations, were sufl'ering such punishments, during which they are used to cry, not so much for mercy as for a draught of water ; but, so long as their blood is inflamed with the torture, it is said that great care must be taken to avoid allowing them drink of any kind, as experience has shown that in that ease they would die in a few hours, and sometimes the very instant after they drank it. I am far from accusing all the colonists of having a hand in these and other cruelties. There are many who hold them- in abomi- nation, and fear lest the vengeance of Heaven should, for all these crimes, fall upon their land and their posterity. Government has no other part in the 160 CAPE COLONY. cruelties exercised by its subjects than that of taking no cognizance of them."^ Perhaps, however, that was part enough. It was thought well to suffer the Hottentots to be exter- minated, in order that the colony might be free from their wicked cattle-stealing ; and if, while that was being done, some c" them could be put to use as slaves, their masters must be responsible to a higher power than man's for any harshness that occurred in the work. So the Dutch farmers led on their lazy life, in which the only excitement was in hunting and torturing the Hottentots ; and their numbers were slowly increased and their territories rapidly ex- tended, until 1795, when Cape Colony was given to England by the Prince of Orange, then a refixgee in London. In 1797 the Earl of ]\Iacartney went to take possession of it and found a district of about 120,000 square miles, more than thrice the size of England, peopled by about 20,000 white men, with their slaves, and an abject race '^f savages in the interior. Little but confusion prt '.ed, however, the Dutch residents rebelling against their new masters and wreaking vengeance upon their black subjects,until 1803, when, by the Treaty of Amiens, the colony was restored to Holland. Soon after that, the European war been revived, the British Government resolved to seize the district by force of arms. Cape Town, after a gallant fight, surrendered to Sir David Baird in 1806, and military rule was in force, being chiefly directed against the sterner Kaffirs who had advanced from the interior to take the place of the almost ex- ^ S])uiTinnn, "Voyrif^p to the Cape of Good Hope," vol. i. pp. 53, 202 ; vol. ii. pp. : i'i 342. ITS TRANSFERENCE TO GREAT BRITAIN. 161 terminated Hottentots, until 1815, when tlie colony was formally and finally ceded to Great Britain. There was mismanagement on the part of the new owners of the colony, although their cliief troubles sprang from a worthy action. In 1808 thu making of fresh slaves was forbidden, and laws began to be enforced for improving the condition of those already on the farms. The white inhabitants would have cared little whether they were nominally subject to England or to Holland, but this novel interference with their privileges as slaveholders was indignantly resented by them. Thus a keen spirit of opposition to their new rulers was aroused, and much mischief sprang from it. The boons at first con- ferred upon the subject Hottentots were too small to win from them any gratitude ; and no attempts at aU were made to pacify the few Hottentots who yet remained in freedom, and the hordes of Kaffirs iu their rear. . .. These Kaffirs, residing in the eastern part of South Africa, had come into contact with the European settlers, partly by their own encroachments upon the districts held by the now almost exterminated Hottentots, partly by the advances made by the Europeans within their own border lands. It seems as if the new Government of the English might easily have made peace with them. Better able to fight than the Hottentots, they were less disposed to do so, having fewer grudges against the white man. " Some," we are told, " harassed the border colonists by frequent predatory incursions; but a consider- able number lived quietly, engaged in cultivating the ground and herding their cattle, and those, L 162 CAPE COLONY. together with another class who had entered the service of the colonists at their request, would gladly have pledged their allegiance to the British Crown, had the privileges of British subjects been offered and duly explained to them in return. The chiefs were daily becoming more sensible of the advantages to be gained by civilization, and entreated that missionaries should be sent for the instruction of their young people. Under these circumstances thei'e is little doubt a large body of Kafl&rs might, by legalising their tenure of certain lands, and other- v.ise by judicious treatment, have been incorporated with and rendered useful members of the community. Others might have been bought out with far less expense than they could be driven out ; and the really irreclaimable, when proved so, expelled with the consent of the chief and council of the sub- tribes to which they belonged." ^ Unfortunately this wise and honourable line of action was not thought of. The English, finding that the Kaflfi.rs were the enemies of the Dutch, made them their own enemies — " irreclaimable, barbarous, and perpetual enemies," as they were described in a proclamation issued at this time. In 1809, Colonel Collins, who had been employed as a commissioner for the settlement of the frontier, recommended the expulsion of all Kaffirs from the border, and even the dismissal of all who had become servants in the colony. In 1811 this was begun. "A great commando, comprising a large force of military and burgher militia, was assembled under Colonel Graham ; and, though the Kaffirs earnestly pleaded v^ A J^;,r ':' ^ Martin, vol. iv. p. 50. THE FIRST KAFFIR "WAR. 1G3 the cruelty of including the innocent and the guilty in the same condemnation, all were expelled with unrelenting severity. No warning was given ; but they were forced to abandon their crops of maize and millet, then nearly ripe, and so extensive that the troops were employed for many weeks in destroy- ing their cultivations by trampling them down with large herds of cattle, and burning to the ground their huts and hamlets; and much longer time elapsed before they succeeded in driving the whole of the people, to the number of 20,000 souls, over the Great Fish Eiver."^ No heed was paid to the pathetic appeals of these poor outcasts. " We have been with you fifteen or twenty years," said some of them, as we are told by one who was present. " We are your friends. We have watched your cattle when they were taken away by our countrymen. We have followed them and brouglit them back to you. Our wives have cultivated your gardens. Our children and yours speak the same language." ^ The colonial troops then crossed the river after the fugitives, and attacked the Kaffir tribes among whom they took refuge. The land-drost, or magistrate and overseer of the district, Mr Stockenstrom, who had often befriended the na,tives, now sought to prevent bloodshed. " He was proceeding across the moun- tains, accompanied by about forty men, when, on approaching one of the Idoofs, or passes, of the White Eiver, he beheld numerous bands of KaiTirs assem- bling on both sides of the narrow ridge connecting two arms rf the great mountain-chain along wliich ' Slartin, vol. iv. pp. .51. * Parliamentary Papers relative to the Cape, 1835, part i. p. 176, 164 CAPE COLONY. lay their path. Eelying on his great personal in- fluence, and hoping to induce the Kaffirs to leave the country without further hostile operations, he rode straight up to them and dismounted in the midst, followed by a few who, having vainly striven to dissuade their leader from his daring enterprise, determined to share whatever hazard he might incur. The conference began, and continued for some time in the most amicable manner. The chiefs and their counsellors gathered round the venerable magistrate and listened with deference to his arguments, until a messenger arrived with the intelligence that the right and centre divisions of the British troops had at- tacked the Kaffirs, some of whose principal men had already fallen. The hope of striking a decisive blow by the destruction of a leader so powerful as the land-drost, combined perhaps with the desire for retaliation, was irresistible. A boor, standing close by Mr Stockenstrom, remarked to him the agitated dis- cussion which had suddenly arisen among a party of Kaffirs who stood aloof in the thicket, but he replied, with a smile, that there was no danger. While yet speaking, his words received a fearful contradiction. The Kaffir war-whoop rent the air, and was re-echoed by barbarian voices from hill and dale for many miles around. In a brief space the land-drost and fourteen of his companions lay dead, pierced by in- numerable wounds. The survivors, of whom several were wounded, avaUed themselves of the fleetness of their horses to escape along the mountain ridge to the camp."^ Tlie only eifect of that conduct towards one of the few European friends of the Kaffirs, was ,X.,,. * i^:; 1 1 Martin, vol. iv. p. 52. OUR TREATMENT OF THE KAFFIRS. 165 increased severity in the unholy exploits of the English. " The Kaffirs," said one who served in the afifair, " were shot indiscriminately, -women as well as men, and even tliough they offered no resistance ;" but he adds, by way of apology, that " the women were killed unintentionally, because the boors could not distinguish them from men among the bushes."^ Tlie murderous work continued till the Kaffirs were forced to retire; but four years elapsed before the district seized from them could be safe without the presence of armed militia. Then the fort erected thereon was named Graham's Town, in honour — if it was any honour — of Colonel Graham, the officer who had commanded in the work. In such ways the English brought upon themselves the deadly hatred of the Kaffirs. Equal mischief sprang from their ways of making friends among the black races. A leader of one of their tribes, named Gaika, being at feud with other chiefs, was in 1817 made an ally by the governor. Lord Charles Somer- set ; and it was agreed between them that Gaika and his people should have exclusive right of trade with the English, and should be aided in war against his rivals, on condition of their helping to punish those rivals for their misdeeds. One curious provision in this treaty was that, whenever cattle were stolen from the colony, the colonists should seize an equiva- lent number from the nearest and most convenient kraal, or village, of the Kaffirs, and that Gaika should make good the loss, if it fell upon his own tribe, by seizure from some of his neighbours. Certainly the Cape colonists were more apt in learning the crafts > Pringle, " Narrative of a Residence in South Africa," p. 291. 166 CAPE COLONY. of barbarism from the natives than in teaching them the arts of civilization. Hardly could a more effective plan have been devised for encouraging ill-will and perpetuating the trade of cattle-stealing, which was now the favourite excuse for raids upon the Kaffirs, as it had been before in the case of the Hottentots. In accordance with this treaty, Gaika, who had been defeated in a battle with his enemies, was in 1.818 aided with a force of 3352 soldiers and armed colonists, who went against a league of several Kaffir tribes. These Kaffirs expostulated against the in- trusion, alleging that they had done no harm to the European towns, and wished to be at peace with them, and claiming that they should be allowed to settle their own quarrels amongst themselves. The answer of the English was a march through the territories of the associated tribes, whose members, not daring to engage in open fight, were slaughtered in their vil- lages, or forced to take refuge in the woods while those villages were destroyed. The gains of this inglorious exploit were 30,000 stolen cattle, of which 9000 were given to Gaika, the rest being distributed among the colonists. The associated tribes, goaded by famine, sought to revenge themselves by raids on the English borders, whereby much injury was done. Of their number 9000 attacked Graham's Town, but its garrison of 350, and' a corps of Hottentots, used their muskets with such deadly effect that the Kaffirs were soon put to flight, 1400 of them being killed in the fight, and many others dying on the way back to their kraals. Thither they were pursued, to be further cruelly punished for their honest resistance of English tyranny. Abou*- 10,000 natives were driven THE SECOND KAFFIR WAR. 167 from their homes, and a new province was added to Cape Colony. It is well that we should understand the disgrace- ful way in which the English quarrel with the Kaffirs was begun and continued ; but it is not necessary here to detail all the painful incidents of the strife, perhaps the most disgraceful in all the annals of English colonial policy, too often dishonourable in itself and unfortunate in its issues. The slender excuse for the treatment to which the Kaf&rs were subjected is that England had to govern a colony, chiefly composed of foreigners, whose disaffection to the new rule set over them was only to be checked by humouring the evil passions to which they had long given free vent. To make willing vassals of the Dutch boors was a hard task. In 1815 an insurrection broke out among them, which Avas with difficulty quelled, and then many of the old settlers only submitted to English government with a sullen discontent that was very injurious to the well-being of the colony. Quiet was not easily maintained, and a healthy hon- ourable temper could in no way be produced. Every effort to do good was a fresh cause of opposition. So it was especially in 1828, when a wise law for pro- tecting the Hottentots, by which slavery was prac- tically done away with, was passed. In 1834 and 1835 another cruel war was waged against the Kaffirs, among whom Gaika, .the former favourite of the colonists, was now included. " Their loss during our operations against them," wrote the governor. Sir Benjamin D' Urban, to Lord Glenelg, then Colonial Secretary, " has amounted to 4000 of 168 CAPE COLONY. their warriors, and, among them, many captains. Ours, fortunately, has not in the whole amounted to 100, and of them only two officers. There have been taken from these, also, besides the conquest and alienation of their country, about 60,000 head of cattle, almost all their goats ; their habitations every- where destroyed, and tlieir gardens and corn-fields laid waste. They have been therefore chastised, not extremely, but perhaps sufficiently." ^ " The enemy," wrote Colonel Smith, concerning one part of the " not extreme " chastisement, " although his traces were numerous, fled so rapidly that few were killed, and only three shots fired at the troops. The whole of the country has been most thoroughly traversed. Upwards of 1200 huts, new and old, have been burnt ; immense stores of corn, in every direction, destroyed. Cattle of all sorts, horses and goats, have fallen into our hands. It is most gratifying to know that the savages, being the unprovoked aggressors, have brought down all the misery with which they are now visited upon the heads of themselves and their families, and that the great day of retribution, and the punishment of the unprovoked atrocities committed by these murderous savages on our colonists, had arrived."^ Lord Glenelg's condemnation of these proceedings, and of the satisfaction with wliich they were regarded by their authors, was honourable. " I must own that I am affected by these statements in a manner the most remote from that which the writer contem- plated. In the civilized warfare of Europe this desolation of an enemy's country, not in aid of any 1 Parliamentaiy Papers, May 1836, p. 89. * Hid., p. 69. THE THIRD KAFFIR WAR. 169 military operations, nor for the security of the invad- ing force, but simply and confessedly as an act of vengeance, has rarely occurred, and the occurrence of it has been invariably followed by universal reproba- tion. I doubt, indeed, whether the history of modern Europe affords an example even of a single case in which, without some better pretext than that of mere retribution, any invaded people were ever subjected to the calamities which Colonel Smith here describes — the loss of their food, the spoiling of their cattle, the burning of their dwellings, the expulsion of their wives and families from their homes, the confiscation of their property, and the forfeiture of their native country. I am, of course, aware that the laws of civilized nations cannot be rigidly applied in our contests with barbarous men ; for those Jaws presup- pose a reciprocity which cannot subsist between parties of whom the one is ignorant of the usages, maxims, and religion of the other. But the great principles of morality are of immutable and universal obligation, and from them are deduced the laws of war. Of these laws the first and cardinal is, that the belligerent must infiict no injury on his enemy which is not indispensably requisite to ensure the rights of him by whom it is inflicted, or to promote the attain- ment of the legitimate ends of the warfare. Wliether we contend with a civilized or a barbarous enemy, the gratuitous aggravation of the horrors of war, on the plea of vengeance or retribution, or on any similar grounds, is alike indefensible. Now I must confess my inability to discover what danger could be averted, or what useful object could be attained, by the desolation of the Kaffir country."^ * Parliamentary Papers, May 1836, p. 70. 170 CAPE COLONY. By Lord Glenelg's instructions, the land seized and the property stolen from the Kafdrs were restored in 1836, and thus a slight recompense was made for the wanton injuries inflicted upon them. Lord Glenelg also introduced a new system of dealing with the Kaffirs, which, if they had not been already so deeply injured by English rule, might have been altogether beneficial, and which, as it was, led to very good results. Treaties were entered into with most of their chiefs, by which trade was encouraged, and their territories were reserved to them witiiout interference, on the condition of their respecting the rights which the Europeans had hitherto acquired by conquest. Thereby peace was kept, and the colony improved rapidly during ten years. In spite of misrtde, its progress had been consider- able ever since the establishment of British dominion. In 1773 there were less than 24,000 white, black, and coloured residents in the Cape Colony. In 1807 they amounted to 56,051 ; in 1817 to 74,099 ; in 1823 to 85,656 ; in 1833 to 129,713 ; and in 1836 to 150,110. In 1846 they numbered 285,279, having nearly doubled in ten years. In the ensuing twenty years the population was again doubled. In 1865 there were 566,158 inhabitants in the colony, of whom 204,859 were Europeans. This rapid growth of population was not due solely to the establishment of better relations with the Kaffir tribes, and the im i ved trade that resulted therefrom. It was also partly caused by the abolition of slavery. In 1834 freedonr v> ,s given to 29,120 slaves, who, as free men, became better servants and made the farms more profitable. The kinder treat- THE FOURTH KAFFIR WAR. 171 ment to whicli tliey were subjected, moreover, not only enabled the resident black population to mul- tiply rapidly, but caused a further increase of its numbers by the settlement in the colonial territory of Kaffirs and Hottentots, who, now that the tyranny of slavery was at an end, gladly sought employment and civilization under the English planters and traders. In 1846 there was another dismal Kaffir war. It began through the imprudence of Sir Peregrine Maitland, a benevolent but unwise governor, who arrived in 1844. His arbitrary behaviour towards the natives in abolishing some of the treaties made with them, aroused their opposition. Cattle-stealing was increased, and disputes about boundaries were revived. Kaffir " insolence," as it was called, showed itself in various ways ; and this, being resented by the colonial authorities and the war-party among the colonists which had lately been kept under, led to a renewal of hostilities. In April 1846 the Kaffir territory was invaded by a small force, and this movement being to a great extent unsuccessful, the blacks were led to retaliate. The old vindictive strife, disgraceful to England, began again, and it was continued with intermissions tUl 1852. Its details need not here be given. r'Onellttle incident will suffice to illustrate the temper in which it was carried on by English officers and gentlemen. Sir Harry Smith, who had promised the Duke of Wel- lington that, with 4000 troops, he would utterly subdue the Kaffirs in two or three weeks, was sent out as governor in 1847. On landing at Port Elizr- beth, he was welcomed by all classes, the war-party 172 CAPE COLONY. hoping that he would further its objects, the more peaceable section, including a vast number of native settlers, trusting that he would further the ends of justice in honourable ways. Among the crowd who came to greet him was Macomo, formerly a great independent chieftain, now a willing subject of the English Crown. "Sir Harry recognised him, half drew his sword from his scabbard, shook it at him, and stamped his foot on the ground. Shortly after he sent for the chief, who, upon being introduced, extended his hand; in return for which his excel- lency gave him his foot, collared him, laid him prostrate, put his foot upon his neck, and then brandished his sword over his head. Macomo, on rising, looked the governor quietly in the face, and said, 'I always thought you a great man till this day.'"^ By policy of that sort the British possessions in South Africa were increased, the largest increase being Sir Harry Smith's addition of the great Orange Eiver district to British territory, but injury was done to the progress of civilization, which no territorial gains or multiplying of subject races can compensate. In 1853 the internal troubles had become so seri- ous that many descendants of the old Dutch settlers, still rebellious against English rule, were allowed to join with the discontented natives of the Orange Eiver territory, and there to found a republic quite independent of Great Britain. Thereby the dimen- sions of Cape Colony were considerably reduced, biit its strength and value were greatly augmented. Its limits, however, were again greatly extended by the * Martin, vol. ir. p. 101. ITS PRESENT CONDITION AND PROSPECTS. 173 addition to it of British Kaffraria, whose inhabitants, so long hostile to our Government, have now become peaceable subjects. The most noteworthy fact in the recent political history of the colony is the re-shaping of its consti- tution in 1852. In lieu of the old military govern- ment, responsible only to the English Crown, the management of affairs is now vested in a civil governor, aided hj a Legislative Council of sixteen members, and a House of Assembly, comprising forty-six representatives elected by the towns and country districts. Cape Colony and British Kaffraria now comprise an area of 200,610 square miles, nearly as large as Spain and Portugal. Cape Town, the metropolis, is a well-built and thriving city; and Graham's Tov/n, Port Elizabeth, and other towns, are vieing with it in importance. In them trade prospers, and agricultural and pastoral pursuits make steady progress in the interior districts, which, if their scenery is less at- tractive than that of some other of our colonies, are healthy and fertile. The value of the imports, which in 1836 was £541,038, had risen to £1,277,101 in 1850, and to £1,942, 281 in 1866. The exports, worth £362,280 in 1836, amounted in 1850 to £637,252, and in 1866 to £2,599,169. That last sum repre- sented, among other articles, 35,231,607 pounds of sheep's wool, 1,018,296 sheep-skins, 678,364 goat- skins, and 21,220 cowhides, with 40,969 pounds of ivory, 15,144 pounds of ostrich feathers,' and 93,164 gallons of wine. Gold, which has recently been found in so many other parts of the world, was dis- covered in Cape Colony in 1868, and, later stiU, a pro- 174 CAPE COLONY. mise has been given of a considerable supply of diamonds. But without these glittering prizes the colony is rich enough in solid advantages. " In addition," we are told, " to a vast extent of upland soil, park-like downs, and sheltered vales, and a climate well adapted to the English constitution, and so fine and dry as to necessitate no winter provender or shelter for sheep or cattle, it affords suitable temperature for an endless variety of culture, by means of proximity to the ocean on either shore, and by the diversified elevation of its lofty mountains and immense plateaux. Here wheat, bringing nearly the best price in the London market, may be grown to an incalculable extent. There two crops of maize or millet may be annually reaped. The vine flourishes over large tracts, and where the grape ripens the olive and mulberry will thrive. Animal food of the best quality abounds; and the fishery on L'Agulhas bank is scarcely inferior to that of Newfoundland. The sugar-cane, tea and coffee plants, flax and cotton, may be eventually added to the present staple colonial products."^ ' Martin, vol. iv. p. 1 53. CHAPTEK XIV. NATAL. THE KAFFIRS — FIRST ENGLISH VISITS TO THE EASTERN COAST OF SOUTH AFRICA — THE SETTLEMENT OF PORT NATAL — ITS EARLY TROUBLES AND LATER PROGRESS — THE PRESENT CONDITION AND RESOURCES OF THE COLONY. [1683-18G9.] HE various tribes of South African Kaffirs are supposed to be of the same stock as the Kaffirs of Persia, and to have emigrated four or five thousand years ago from the neiglibourhood of tlie Tigris or Euphrates, passing northwards through Egypt, and carrying with them the language, habits, and religious practices of their forefathers. In all these respects their affinity with the Asiatic race is stUl traceable. They differ essen- tially from the Hottentots and other yet more degraded inhabitants of Africa. " The physical conformation of the body is fine. The men ordinarily stand about five feet ten inches to six feet high, slenderly built, but compact and wiry. JSTot unfrequentiy the head is well developed, displaying considerable mental power; and amongst the men the numerous ways in which they are called to engage in intellectual gladiatorship impart an intelligence and expressive- ness to the whole contour which are far removed from the low savage or the sordid barbarian."^ Many of their customs and institutions are savage and laar- 1 Holden, " The Past and Future of the Kaflar Races," p. 174. 176 NATAL. barous enough ; but even their vices often show traces of a perverted worth never possessed by their neigh- bours. These are the people with whost, southern tribes the Dutch and English residents in Cape Colony have been in contact and conflict during upwards of a century, and with whose northern tribes, especially the Zulus, we have lately been brought into relation- ship by our colonization of Natal. Port Natal — so called because he entered its har- bour on Christmas Day — was discovered by Vasco de Gania in 1498. But for more than three centuries the eastern shores of South Africa were rarely visited by Europeans, unless they were shipwrecked on the coast or forced to pay it a brief visit in search of provisions for their onward voyages to the East Indies. The first English intercourse was in 1683, when a trading vessel was lost near Delagoa Bay, about a hundred leagues north of Natal. " The natives," says the old chronicler, " showed the shipwrecked men more civility and humanity than some nations that I know who pretend much religion and politeness ; for they accommodated their guests with whatever they wanted of the product of their country at very easy rates, and assisted what they could to save part of the damaged cargo, receiving very moderate reward for their labour and pains. For a few glass beads, knives, scissors, needles, thread, and small looking- glasses, they hired themselves to carry many things to a neighbouring country, and provided others, who also served as guides towards the Cape of Good Hope, and provided eatables for their masters all the while they were under their conduct. And, having carried them ITS FIRST EUKOPEAN VISITORS. 177 about two hundred miles on their way by land, they provided new guides and porters for them, as the others had done, for seven or eight hundred miles farther, which they travelled in forty days, and so delivered their charge to others, till they anived at the Cape. And, some of the English falling sick on the way, they carried them in hammocks till they either recovered or died ; and out of eighty men there were only three or four that died; but how long they journeyed before they got to the Cape I have forgotten. This account I have from one of the travellers. He told me that the natural fertility of those countries he travelled through made the inhabitants lazy, indolent, indocile, and simple. Their rivers are abundantly stored with good fish and water-fowl, besides sea-cows and crocodiles ; their woods with large trees, wild cattle and deer, elephants, rhinoceroses, lions, tigers, wolves, and foxes ; also many sorts of fowl and birds, with ostriches."^ It was probably by the report of the travellers, who certainly had no reason to charge their kind friends with being "lazy and indocile," that a few years afterwards, in 1689, the Dutch colonists at the Cape sent a vessel to explore the eastern coast. " One may travel two or three hundred miles through the country," said one of the party, "without any cause of fear from men, provided you go naked, and without any iron or copper; for these thiAgs give inducement to murder tl.ose who have them. Neither [need one be in any apprehension about meat and [drink, as they have in every vUlage a kraal, or house * Chase, " Natal Papers," vol. i. p. 2. M 178 NATAL. of entertainment for travellers, where they are not only lodged, but fed also."* So well pleased were the Dutch with this district and its people, that, in 1704, they sent an agent to purchase the Bay of Natal and its neighbourhood for "some merchandise, consisting of copper, arm and neck rings," valued at 20,000 guilders. But, fortu- nately for the Zulu Kaffirs, the Dutch, fully occupied at the Cape, made no use of their purchase. For a hundred years the natives had undisturbed possession of their homes, and then they were troubled, not by Europeans, but by another race of Kaffirs, who, coming down from the inland mountain region, spread desolation over the district north and south of Natal Harbour. No European colony in this district was seriously thought of till 1823, when Lieutenant Fairwell, E.N., visited it ; and, being welcomed by U tshaka, the vic- torious Kaffir chieftain, sought and obtained permis- sion of Lord Charles Somerset, governor of Cape Colony, to plant in it a settlement of Englishmen. This he promptly did. Accompanied by Mr Elynn, Captain King, a few other Europeans, and some Hot- tentots, he proceeded to Natal, when Utshaka gave him a grant of about 3000 square miles of land and several herds of cattle. " We had an opportunity of further gaining his friendship," wrote Lieutenant Fairwell to the governor, " by curing him of a dan- gerous wound he received since we have been here ; and I trust I shall, by frequent communications and a studious endeavour to avoid giving offence, increase his and his subjects' confidence in us."^ » Holden, p. 123. » Chase, vol. i. p. 17. ITd COLONIZATION. 179 Lieutenant Fairwell began his work nobly; but it was jealously regarded by the Cape colonists. Hav- ing built a little vessel at Natal, he sent it with a cargo of ivory to Algoa Bay, where it was refused admittance, and forced to rot on the beach, on the plea that it was not provided with any official register as a British trading-ship.^ Thus thwarted, the brave pioneer of Natal colonization managed to open a route by land, and thus sent his wares for sale in Graham's Town. He was not allowed, however, to pursue his enterprise for long. In 1828 Utshaka, a fierce despot who had discernment enough to de- sire the benefits likely to result from intercourse with Europeans, was assassinated by his younger brother Udingaan ; and this new tyrant, apparently enraged at the conduct of some Dutch settlers on the border- land between his territory and Cape Colony, soon caused or sanctioned the destruction of the little colony at Natal. Perhaps also he was alarmed at its rapid progress, and at the friendship shown by the English to the older inhabitants of the district, who, having fled into the woods when it was invaded by Utshaka, now came back in considerable numbers _J to share in its prosperity. FairweU and some of his followers were murdered while crossing the moun- tains in 1829. An attack was then made upon Natal, and many of its residents being put to death, the rest were compelled to abandon the settlement. It was revived in 1835. In the previous year the authorities at Cape Colony, at length alive to the value of the enterprise, obtained the permission of the British Government to enter upon it with spirit. ' Parliamentary Papers, 1835, part ii. p. 97. 180 NATAL. Captain Allen Gardiner, whose miserable death at Terra del Fuego is well known, proceeded on a mis- sion to the tyrant ; and, after some difficulty, partly removed by the promise of a red cloak, obtained from him not only a renewal of the grant of land made to Fairwell, but about 4000 more square miles. The town of D'Urban, in Natal Harbour, was laid out, and to it came some Englishmen and a larger number of Dutch, who, having left Cape Colony in disgust at the liberation of their slaves in 1834, came in search of fresh means of aggrandizement in the new settle- ment. Their coming had a memorable issue. Quar- rels soon broke out, as before, between them and the Kaffirs ; and in 1838 a battle was fought in which the Europeans were defeated with great slaughter. It seemed as if Natal was to be once more abandoned. A small military force, however, was sent up from Graham's Town to protect it. This protection, other- wise inactive, enabled the settlers to make arrange- ments for fighting their own battles. They boldly attacked Udingaan in 1840, and overcame him, there- by so weakening his repute among his own people that he was soon afterwards assassinated. The Dutch residents, now having supremacy in Natal, announced their intention of malcing it independent of English authority, and the centre of a republican settlement. An English force was sent to quell this rebellion ; and its result was the formal annexation of the settle- ment to Cape Colony in 1844. In the following year a Lieutenant-Governor and Executive Council were appointed. In 1848 the settlement was allowed to have its own Legislative Council; and in 1856 it Avas converted into a separate and distinct colony, and its ITS PROGRESS. 181 inhabitants were allowed to choose their own House of Assembly. Since then it has grown rapidly. Its white popu- lation, which in 1846 numbered about 6000, is now about thrice as numerous. The white, coloured, and black inhabitants, comprised within an area of 16,145 square miles, were in 1866 estimated at 193,103. In that year the imports of the young colony were worth £263,305 ; and its exports, consisting chiefly of wool, sugar, cotton, and coffee, were valued at £203,402. Much of the trade, however, only passed through Natal on its way to and from the Orange Eiver Eepublic, on the other side of the Drakenberg Mountains. The wealth-producing powers of the colony itself, though much developed during the past few years, are yet only in their infancy. Few possessions of Great Britain have more attractive f'^atures or fairer prospects. Every part of the district is described as fertile and healthy. " The country rises from the sea-coast in a series of terraces to an elevation of several thousand feet, and presents a rare variety of scenery, soil, and climate. Along the Indian Ocean is a belt of land about fifteen miles in breadth, the greater part of which rises and falls in a succession of roxind swelling hills and small valleys, carpeted with long grass, over which are scattered clumps of trees, chiefly of mimosa and euphorbia. In some places the unifoi-mity of the scenery is relieved by forests and dense jungle ; in others, by vast massed! of lofty and abrupt hills and deep ravines. This lovely region favours the vegetation both of the tropics and of southern Europe. Sugar, coffee, indigo, and 182 - NATAL. almost every other tropical plant flourish, along with the mulberry, olive, and vine. Nor is it -anfavour- able to some of the productions of a cooler climate ; for oats, beans, and potatoes, especially the first two, thrive well. Having crossed this belt, we ascend into a country where the hills take a longer sweep, something like the downs of Sussex. They are still covered with long grass, but the wood has disappeared, except in small patches in the hollows and on the banks of the streams. The character of the vegetation has changed, and we no longer see that of the tropics. Good crops of wheat, oats, potatoes, and other productions of a temperate climate, are produced, and the district is admirably suited for horses and horned cattle. Many fruits also flourish in this part, among which are the orange, pomegranate, peach, and apricot. Proceeding still farther, and ascending another terrace, we find the hills more massive, with a stUl longer and bolder sweep, covered with grass, but generally bare of wood. They are frequently flat-topped, and some- times expand into table-land. At intervals, on the crests of the hills, we meet with stony ridges, com- posed of large boulders, stretching across the coimtry like huge dykes. In the distance farther inland we see rugged hills cut by deep ravines, and beyond them the mountain range, rising abruptly like a wall 8000 feet above the level of the sea, and nearly 4000 above the country at its base; with here and there buttresses thrown out like towers and battle- ments — in summer casting a dark rugged outline against the deep blue sky, and in winter radiant in a mantle of snow. Sweeping round to the north-west, ITS TIESOUKCES. 183 the range sinks into lower hills, presenting a softer outline, with passes winding over them. The long coarse grass of the lower country is here exchanged for a shorter and finer kind, and everything about him tells the traveller that he has now reached a land admirably adapted both for horned cattle and for sheep. He finds, too, that the country produces abundant crops of wheat, oat, and other cereals of England; while he is refreshed by the taste of excellent peaches, apricots, apples, pears, and other fruits of a temperate climate. Scattered at intervals over the whole face of the country are vast clusters of hills. These localities seem to have been subject to violent convulsions of nature. The hiUs, or rather mountains, rear their rugged or scarped sides in every fantastic form, overhanging deep and gloomy glens, the channels of rushing rivers or foaming torrents."^ * "Encyclopaedia Britannica," vol. xv. p. 802. CHAPTER XV. BRITISH INDIA. THE PEOORBSS OF BKITISH TRADE AND CONQUEST IN INDIA — ITS PKESENT CONDITION. [1600-1869.] PJTISH India is hardly, according to the usual sense of the word, a colony; and the memorable story of its gradual acquisition forms a separate and eventful portion of the annals of ouj empire. Only some of the most salient features in that story, therefore, need be briefly touched upon in this volume. The great peninsula was unvisited by Englishmen, with the exception of a few daring travellers by land and sea, until a century after Vasco de Gama's dis- covery in 1498 of a passage to it by way of the Cape of Good Hope. In 1599 the English East India Com- pany was formed; and in 1601 its first trading fleet went out to sow the seeds of commerce and conquest, not on the mainland, but in some of the rich islands south-west of it. The first British factory on the peninsula was established in 1612, by Captain Best, at Surat ; and after that commerce throve mightily, and conquest slowly advanced during a hundred and fifty years. The Dutch the Portuguese, and the French, were rivals of the English in the prosperous trade, and most of the early fighting was with them. In furtherance of their strife, however, the Europeans 184 ITS HISTOEY. 185 sought allies among the natives of the country. Thus each acquired a sort of jurisdiction far beyond the narrow limits of their forts and factories; and at length the English, having driven out their rivals, found themselves associated with numerous local potentates who acknowledged their supremacy, and at variance with others who had aided the cause of the now defeated European rivals. In that way the conquest of India was brought about in the middle of the eighteenth century. The dari ng and dishonour- able exploits of Clive and Warren Hastings are well known. The territorial rule of the East India Com- pany began with CUve's war in the Carnatic, and his great victory at Plassey in 1757. It was partly won by aid of some native soldiers, now for the first time employed under English ofl&cers, and destined, during just a century, to be the main instruments of Eng- lish power in overcoming one native prince after another, and in acquiring great districts in quick succession, until the whole peninsula was brought into subjection, and kept in order by means of the famous Sepoy army. At the end of the century, the Sepoys, overpetted in some respects and needlessly offended in others, turned against their employers. The great Indian Mutiny of 1857 was the result; and, overcome by bravery and martial wisdom rarely equalled in the whole world's history, it led to the transference of the vast Indian empire from the rule of the East India Company to the direct dominion of the British Crown. The territories thus transferred comprise an area of more than 1,000,000 square miles, eight times as large as that of Great Britain and Ireland, and con- 186 ♦ BRITISH INDIA. tain a population five times as numerous. The inhabitants more than suffice for the cultivation of the land and the development of its resources ; and th(i only openings in it for European residents are as agents of Government, teachers, and traders. Much has yet to be done in education of the people as to better ways of agriculture, and more useful methods of interchanging their commodities, and great progress has been made in these respects during recent years. The revenue, which was £27,000,000 in 1851, and £36,000,000 in 1859, exceeded £44,000,000 in 1864, and £48,000,000 in 1868. The imports of merchan- dise, worth £4,261,106 in 1834, rose in value to £11,558,788 in 1850, and to £36,093,938 in 1868. The exports of the same years were £7,993,420, £18,164,149, and £53,062,165. The incoming trade had been multiplied nearly nine times, and the out- going trade nearly seven times, in the course of four- and-thirty years. The raw cotton alone sent from India to the United Kingdom in 1864 was worth nearly £38,000,000; and the cotton goods sent back exceeded in value £12,000,000. Besides cotton, this great territory, possessing nearly every variety of soil and temperature, furnishes rice, wheat, sugar, coffee, tea, silk, wool, flax, indigo, and other dyes, with spices, oils, and a hundred other commodities. Bombay, the great trading capital of India, contains, with its suburbs, hardly fewer than a million inhabi- tants; and the population of Calcutta, the centre of government, and scarcely inferior as a resort of trade, exceeds a million. The English residents in the whole dependency, however, including 84,083 military men, numbered only 125,945 in 1861. CHAPTEE XVI. OUR ASIATIC COLONIES. CEYLON — ITS EARLY CIVILIZATION — ITS SUBJECTION TO THE PORTUGUESE, THE DUTCH, AND THE ENGLISH — ITS PRESENT CONDITION — THE STRAITS SETTLEMENTS : PENANG, MALACCA, AND SINGAPORE — HONG KONG — BORNEO AND LABUAN — THE ACHIEVEMENTS OF SIR JAMES BROOKE. [1795-1869.] HE East India Company, formed "for the advancement of trade and mer- chandise to the East Indies and the islands and countries thereabout," found so much profit in its intercourse with the mainland of Hindostan, that, during two centuries in which other European nations were establishing in them forts, factories, and colonies, it gave little thought to the outlying portions of the East Indies. Not tiQ near the close of the eighteenth century was their value understood or effort made to appropriate some of them as dependencies of England. And even then this was done rather in jealousy of the rival nations than in the interests of trade. So especially it was with Ceylon. This beautiful island, with an area of nearly 25,000 square miles, and therefore not much smaller than Ireland, was famous for its wealth and civilization in the days of Alexander the Great. Anuradpoora, its ancient capital, founded in the year 437 B.C., covered sixteen square miles, and was adorned with splendid archi- isr 188 OUB ASIATIC COLONIES. tectural works, the remains of whicli yet exist. Huge tanks and sluices, so stoutly built of granite and other hard stone that some of tham are stUl, after the lapse of more than two thousand years, but little injured, served to irrigate the land, and helped it to maintain the five or six million inhabitants whom it is supposed to have contained in its ancient days of splendour. It was still populous and thriv- ing, though much decayed, when the Portuguese began, in 1518, to build a fort and plant a settle- ment at Colombo. Much misery resulted to the inhabitants from, that settlement. War between the natives and the aggressors lasted nearly all through the century and a half of Portuguese occu- pation; and the Dutch, who expelled and succeeded their rivals in 1656, brought no better fortune to the Singhalese during their tenure of Colombo, which also lasted for nearly a century and a half. In 1795 they were twice expelled by the English, and Ceylon became a British possession. At first in the hands of the East India Company, it was made a Crown colony in 1802. The first incidents of British rule were inaus- picious. An unwise invasion of Kandy, then the centre of native authority, in 1803, issued in the ignominious defeat and slaughter of nearly all the invaders. Other troubles followed, which ended in the conquest of the whole island in 1815. Measures, for the most part prudent and generous, were then taken for the improvement of the colony ; and latterly its progress, unmarked by any memorable incidents, has been very rapid. In 1814, Ceylon contained about 852.940 inhabitants. In 1832 the number ^immmm CEYLON, PAST AND PRESENT. 189 was estimated at 1,009,008 ; in 1852, at 1,707,194 ; and in 1866, at 2,008,027. The revenue of the island, only about £200,000 in 18j7, was £962,874 in 1866. The imports were valued at £329,933 in 1828; at £1,181,149 in 1853 ; and at £3,517,184 in 1863. The exports amounted to £215,372 in 1828 ; to £979,874 in 1853 ; and to £3,070,248 in 1866. The principal commodities then exported were 899,480 hundredweight of coffee, 869,484 pounds of cinnamon, 25,143 hundredweight of tobacco, and 83,801 hundredweight of cocoa-nut oil. This great increase of trade is chiefly due to British enterprise ; but hardly more than 15,000 of the inhabi- tants are Europeans. The rapid growth of popula- tion is native, or derived from Oriental colonization. The natives are of four races, varying much in civiliza- tion and powers of development. The Veddas, or aborigines, frequent the forests stretching from the south to the north-west, and all the more inacces- sible parts of the island, where, hardly superior to monkeys, they form nearly the lowest and most degraded of all the members of the human family. The Singhalese, found chiefly around Kandy and in the region south of it, handsome in body, show traces of an effete civilization, and regard the white men with a hatred for which some excuse may be found in the hard treatment they have received from Europeans. " Jealousy, slander, litigation, and revenge," says Sir James Emerson Tennant, "pre- vail among them to an unlocked for excess.' Licen- tiousness is so universal that it has ceased to be opprobrious, and hatred so ungovernable that murders are by no means rare. Falsehood, the 190 OUR ASIATIC COLONIES, unerring index of :"nnute debasement, is of ubiqui- tous prevalenc T^eft is equally prevalent; and deceit in every conceivable shape, in forgery and fraud, in corruption and defamation, is so notorious amongst the uneducated mass, that the feeling of confidence is almost unknown ; and in the most intimate arrangements of domestic life the bond of brotherhood or friendship, of parent and of child, inspires no effectual reliance in the mutual good faith and honour of the interested parties." Superior to these are the Malabars or Hindoos, who appear to have long ago settled in Ceylon, and who most abound in the northern and eastern parts of the island ; and the Moors, a mixed race, contain- ing African blood, and perhaps partly formed out of the slavery established by the Portuguese and Dutch, who are hardworking traders and artizans in aU parts of Ceylon. These last two races prove the best servants of the English merchants and planters. Ceylon is particularly rich in all vegetable pro- ductions, from coffee, cinnamon, and rice, to the huge teak and palm, with ebony and other cabinet woods. Agriculture yields employment to most of the inha- bitants. Yet, as Sir Emerson Tennant has said, " in Ceylon agriculture, in all its branches, must be regarded as an art almost unknown. Notwith- standing all the advantages in variety of soil, gradua- tions of temperature and adaptability of climate, the cultivation of rice may be said to be the only suc- cessful tillage of the natives. With the favourable circumstances alluded to, and the expanse of surface to be applied, it is impossible to foresee the extent to THK STEAITR SETTLEMENTS. 191 •which the productions of nearly every other country might be domesticated and extended throughout this island. In the highlands and mountain regions, and particularly in the -wooded valleys and open plains, which are found at an elevation of from 3000 to 7000 feet, there is an encouraging field for the introduction of most of the grains and vegetable productions of Europe." Much has been done since those words were written ; but vast tracts of country still wait to be reclaimed from the aggressions of tigers and elephants upon the scenes of by-gone civilization in Ceylon. Almost the same may be said of the districts east of Ceylon, on the other side of the Bay of Bengal, now known as the Straits Settlements, including Singapore, Penang, and Malacca. The Malayan peninsula, a long strip of land containing about 1000 square miles, belonged to the Portuguese from 1571 till 1640. It was then held by the Dutch for a cen tury and a half. It v,'as after vards twice captured by the English and twice restored to its former owners before finally becoming British property in 1825. In it tin abounds; and rice, sugar, coffee, cotton, indigo, chocolate, and various spices are prolific. On its western side, the little island of Penang, about as large as the Isle of Wight, is a fertile garden of spices ; and Singapore, an island about twice as large, adjoin- ing the southern extremity of the mainland, is rich in timber of every sort. The smaller island was acquired by the East India Company in 1786 ; the other was taken by Sir Stamford Eaffles in 1818 from a horde of about a hundred and fifty Malayan pirates. All the tliree dependencies were united under one govern- 192 OUR ASIATIC COLONIES. ment, as the Straits Settlements, in 1867. Their aggregate population exceeds 250,000, amongst whom Chinese immigrants are numerous and most active; and they derive great profit from trade between all the East Indian Islands and Europe, for which the situation of Singapore — " the little shop," as the name implies — is especially adapted. Ihe goods passing in and out each year are valued at more than £10,000,000, and give employment to ships with a total tonnage of nearly 2,000,000, although the resources of the colonies themselves, save in the production of opium, are yet but scantUy made use of. Much of the trade by which Singapore is enriched is derived from China, and passes through the little island of Hong Kong, the smallest of all the colonies of Great Britain. " The island consists of a broken ridge of mountainous hills at an average height of about 1000 feet ; but from this ridge and its spurs various conical mountains rise to the height of 1500 or 2000 feet above the sea, and are very precipitous. The greater part of the coast shelves abruptly from the ocean, particularly on the north face. There are a few narrow valleys and deep ravines through which the sea occasionally bursts, or which serve as conduits for the mountain torrents ; but on the north side of the island, especially where the town of Victoria is built, the rocky ridge approaches close to the harbour; and it was only by hewing through this ridge that a street or road could be made to connect the straggling lines of buildings which extend along the water's edge for nearly four miles. Here and there, on the tops of some isolated hills, or along the precipitous slopes of HONG KONG. 193 the mountains, scattered houses have been constructed; but rugged, broken, and abrupt precipices, with deep rocky ravines, must effectually prevent any contracted population from being able to provide efliciently for its own protection, cleanliness, and comfort. Hong Kong cannot be said to possess any vegetation ; a few goats with difficulty find pasturage."^ A rugged beauty characterizes the island-rock ; but its geological formation, and the pernicious climate to which it is exposed, render it one of the most unhealthy spots in the world. This inhospitable little island, with an area of about 30 square miles, for centuries the haunt of Chinese pirates and smugglers, was ceded to Great Britain by China in 1842 as a free port for trade, and a naval station for the protection of British interests in Chinese waters. To it was added the small penin- sula of ICowloon in 1861. Its population, about 12,000 in 1842, was 29,507 in 1849, and 117,471 in 1867 ; but of these only 1644 were Europeans, and 30,537 of the natives, unable or unwilling to find homes on the bari'en shore, lived in boats in the rivers. The revenue of the colony rose from £31,078 in 1847 to £160,226 in 1866. But it derived its importance from the jealousy of the Chinese in excluding foreign trade from other ports; and now that a better policy has been established, commerce is passing fi'om the unhealthy rock in the south to more attractive and more commodious places on the northern coast. South of Hong Kong, and west of Singapore, is Borneo, the largest island in the world, with the 1 Martiu, vol. vi. p. 63. N 194 OUR ASIATIC C0L0KIE3. exception of Australia, famous as a resort for pirates through many centuries, and for the philanthropic efforts towards its redemption made in recent times by Eajah Brooke. The English and other nations had more than once sought to effect a settlement and open trade on its shores ; but on each occasion they were forced to retire by the murderous conduct of native marauders. At length, in 1839, Mr James Brooke, then thirty-six years of age, resolved to at- tempt the establishment of a better state of things. " T go," he said, " to awaken the slumbering spirit of philanthropy with regard to these islands. Fortune and life I freely give ; and, if I fail in the attempt, I shall not have lived wlioUy in vain." Proceeding to Sarawak, on the western coast of Borneo, he con- ciliated the inhabitants, and was soon chosen by them as rajah. This office he accepted in 1841, on con- dition that slavery and piracy should be abolished in the region assigned to him, and that he should use any means he found necessary for their entire sup- pression ; that Englishmen should have right of trade in any part of the great island, and that the smaller island of Labuan should be ceded to Great Britain. To these proposals the nominal King of Borneo agreed ; and for his services Mr Brooke was rewarded by the English Crown with knighthood, and endowed with the functions of Governor of Labuan and Con- sul-general in Borneo. He also sought to have his dominions in Sarawak recognised by the British Government, and to receive national aid in the work on which he had already expended £12,000 of his own. This, however, was denied, and he was forced to carry on the work in his own way. The people KAJAH BKOOKE IN BORNEO. 195 over whom lie had to rule, and iiilcd successfully for moie thau tweuly years, occupy an intermediate position between tlie Malayans who have in modern times acquired a footing and a nominal dominion over the whole island, and the aboriginal and only half-human !Malauaus, or Paketans, who occupy tho interior. They are of two classes : the Hill Dyaks, who occupy the greater portion of Sarawak as well as other parts of Borneo, and are poor, industrious, and peaceable ; and the Sea Dyaks, scattered over the coast and on the banks of large rivers, who are of much fiercer disposition. It was these whom Eajah Brooke sought especially to reclaim. " They have never been more than nominally subject to the Malays," we are told ; " and Sir James Brooke is the first master whom they have really obeyed. Every year a cloud of murderous pirates issued from their rivers and swept the adjacent coasts. No man was safe by reason of his poverty or insignificance, for human heads were the booty sought by these rovers, and not wealth alone. Villages were attacked in the dead of night, and every adult cut off. The women and grown girls were frequently slaughtered with the men, and children alone were preserved, to be the slaves of the conqueror. Never was warfare so ter- rible as this. Head-hunting became a mania which sprei d like a horrible disease over tlie whole land. Murder lurked in the jungle and on the river.' The aged warrior could not rest in his grave till his rela- tions had taken a head in his name : the maiden disdained the weak-hearted suitor whose hand was not yet stained with some cowardly murder."^ * Boyle, "Adventures among tlie Dyaks of Borneo." 196 OUR ASIATIC COLOMLS. This spirit ruled among the Sea Dyaks when Sir James Brooke went to rule over and to reform them. From his nephew and successor, Mr Charles Brooke, he received important help in the good work he was able to do. " He first gained over a portion of these Dyaks to the cause of order," says the nephew, " and then used them, as instruments in the same cause, to restrain their countrymen. The result has been that the coast of Sarawak is as safe to the traders as the coast of England, and that an unarmed man can travel the country without let or hind- rance."^ That end, if quite gained yet, was not gained without difficulty. The chief trouble came from the custom of head-hunting. Every now and then a raid would be made iipon Sarawak from some inland part, and half a dozen or more of the natives would be decapitated. As often, parties of four or five of Eajah Brooke's subjects would make an ex- cursion inland, in hopes of returning with a few stolen heads as trophies of their prowess. " As soon as ever one of these parties started, or even listened to birds of omen preparatory to moving," says Mv Brooke, "a party was immediately dispatched by Government to cut them off, and to fine them heavily on their return; or, in the eveni of their bringing heads, to demand the delivery of theru up, and the payment of a fine into the bargain. This was the steady and unflinching work of years; but, before many months were over, my stock of heads became numerous and the fines considerable." All who offered resistance were decla^'ed enemies of the Government, and burnt out of their bouses, alien tribes being employed to * Brooke, " Ten Years in Sarawak." LABUAN. 197 do the work. Occasionally larger expeditions were organized, under the leadership of the Eajah himself or his nephew, wlio went inland or on water, with two or three hundred followers, to punish the more remote or more troublesome tribes, when English guns easily succeeded against native swords and spears. Thus some sort of order and civilized behaviour has been established. ■'' It is a singularly easy government to carry on," we are assured; "tribes, one with another, being so well balanced that, in the event of danger arising from one party, the other may be trusted to counteract evil influences."^ Whether this bold enterprise of Sir James Brooke's will secure all the benefits expected by him time only can show. But from it benefits have already resulted Borneo has been opened to European trade, and Labuan has become an English colony. This little island, with an area of 45 square miles, had in 1865 I a population of 2785, employed in trade with Borneo or in rendering available the timber that abounds on the surface of the island, and the coal which is no less abundant beneath the surface. The local revenue of Labuan, which was £59 in 1848, had risen to £2535 in 1854, and to £7370 in 1865. Most of its trade is in exchanging European produce for the hides, spices, and other commodities of Borneo. ^ Brooke. a CHAPTEE XVIL EAKLY AUSTEALASIAN DISCOVERIES. PORTUOrESB AND DUTCH DISCOTEHIES OF ArSTRALIA — TASMAN — ENGLISH VOYAGERS — DAMPIER IN AUSTRALIA — CAPTAIN COOK IN NEW ZEALAND AND AUSTRALIA — FRENCH EXPEDITIONS. [1601-1788.] USTEALIA, a vast island more than three- quarters of the size of Europe, and only the largest of a numerous group which with it, in pre-historic times and before it was the sport of volcanic action, seems to have formed one vast southern continent, was first visited among Europeans by some Portuguese voyagers early in the sixteenth century. The nearer regions of the East Indies, however, then proved more attractive; and no distinct effort to explore it appears to have been made tni after 1601, when it was again seen by another Portuguese, named Godinho de Heredia, and then the effort was not made by Portuguese but by Dutch- men. Chiefly by them it was often reached, and its most accessible parts, as well as the adjoining islands, were gradually explored during the eighteenth cen- tury. Tasman's expeditions, sent out under the direction of Anthony Van Dieman in 1642 and 1644, being the most famous and fruitful of all. Tasman first discovered the island which, now known by his name, was formerly called Van Dieman's Land, in honour of his employer. Then he traversed the 1«8 DAMPIEK IN AUSTEALIA. 199 northern shore of Australia or New Holland. Others of his race carried on the work of exploration; but still the voyages of discovery failed to issue in colonization ; and after the close of the eighteepth century the Dutch resigned the quest, as the Portu- guese had done before them. The English, who had not before been altogether idle, then succeeded to the enterprise. "William Dampier, who began his seaman's life as a buccaneer in the West Indies, was the first of our nation to encrape in it. In 1688 he visited the north-western part of Australia, of which he gave an unfavourable report. " It was only low and sandy ground, the points only excepted, which are rocky, as some isles in the bay. This part had no fresh water, except what was dug, but divers sorts of trees, and among the rest the dragon-tree, which produces the gum called dragon's-blood. We saw neither fruit-trees, nor so much as the track of any living being of the bigness of a large mastiff dog ; some few land-birds, but none larger than a blackbird, and scarcely any water-fowl. The inhabitants are the most miserable wretches in the universe, having no houses, nor gar- ments, except a piece of the bark of a tree, tied like a girdle round the waist ; no sheep, poultry, or fruits. They feed upon a few fish, cockles, mussels, and periwinkles. They are without religion or govern- ment. They are tall, straight-bodied, and thin, with small, long limbs. They have great round foreheads and great brows. Their eyelids are always half closed to keep the flies out of their eyes, they being 60 troublesome here that no fanning will keep them from coming to one's face. So that, from their 200 EARLY AUSTRALASIAN DISCOVERIES. infancy being thus annoyed with these insects, they do never open their eyes as other people do; and, therefore, they cannot see far, unless they hold up their heads. They are long visaged, and of an unpieasing aspect, having no graceful feature in their faces. The colour of their skin, both of their faces and the rest of their body, is coal black, like that of the negroes of Guinea. They live in companies, twenty or thirty men, women, and children together. Their only food is a sort of small fish, which they get by making weirs of stones across little coves or branches of the sea, every tide bringing in the small fish, and there leaving them for a prey to these people, who constantly attend to search for them at lowwater."^ Dampier went to Australian waters again, and made some further explorations, in 1699, though his chief visit was paid to the same western districts to which he had gone before. Except for the pleasure of discovering the barrenest spot on the face of the globe, he said, his achievements in New Holland would not have charmed him much.^ He then saded north, explored New Guinea, and discovered New Britain. His dismal account of these regions helped to deter other voyagers from following in his track. Nothing memorable was done till 1769, when Captain Cook, proceeding from Otaheite in his famous voyage round the world, reached the south-eastern side of New Zealand, and established some intimacy with its bold natives. His friendly advances being at first rejected, he killed four and captured two of them, thus beginning ^ Howitt, " History of Discovery in Australia, Ta-smania, and New Zealand," vol. i. pp. 66, 67. = Howitt, vol. i. p. 72. CAPTAIN COOK IN NEW ZEALAND. 201 a strife still fruitful in misfortune both to English- men and to JVIaories. Through his captives, however, wliom he treated kindly, he and some of his party afterwards were able to land, and had the first English experience of New Zealand life. " They entered some of their huts and saw them at their meals. Their huts were very slight, and generally placed ten or fifteen together. They found them generally dining on fish, and eating to it the bruised and roasted roots of fern. This was in October. In the more advanced season they understood that they had plenty of excel- lent vegetables ; but they saw no animals except dogs. They found both men and women painted with red ochre and oil, but the women much the most so ; and, like the South Sea Islanders, they saluted by touching noses. They wore petticoats of native cloth, made from the New Zealand flax, and a sort of cloak or mantle of a much coarser kind. They found them more modest in manner and more cleanly in their homes than the Otaheitians. They bartered their cloth and war-weapons for European cloth ; but nails they set no value on, having as yet evidently no knowledge of iron and its uses. What astonished the English greatly was to find boys whipping tops exactly like those of Europe. They found some houses larger and more strongly built than those on the shore. They measured one canoe, made out of the lobes of three trees, which was 68^ feet long, 5 wide, and 3 high. These, as well as their houses, were much adorned with carvings, in which tboy seemed to prefer spiral lines and distorted faces." ^ "With other New Zealanders, as he sailed along tho * Howitt, vol. i. pp. 81, 82. 202 EARLY AUSTRALASIAN DISCOVERIES. south-east coast, Captain Cook attempted to have friendly dealings ; but his attempts generally ended in quarrel and bloodshed, both then and in the whole of his voyage right round the New Zealand group. Meaning well, he and his party acted with rashness and severity, which have had deplorable results in later times, whereas more forbearance might have been attended with the best consequences. " Without measuring the past by the present standard," says one who had access to native traditions, " the savage New Zealanders on several occasions acted as civilized men, and the Christians like savages. Lieutenant Gore fired from the ship's deck at a New Zealander in a canoe, who had defrauded him of a piece of calico. In the excitement of paddling to escape, the injury done by the musket was not noticed by the natives in the canoe, although detected by Lieutenant Gore from the ship's deck, as Maru-tu-ahua, the man shot, scarcely altered his position. When the canoe reached the shore, the natives found their comrade sitting dead on the stolen calico, which was stained with his life's blood, the ball having entered his back. Several chiefs investigated into the affair, and declared that Maru-tu-ahua deserved his fate ; that he stole and was killed for so doing, and that his life blood should not be revenged on the strangers. Seeing, however, Maru-tu-ahua had paid for the calico with his life, it was not taken away from him, but was wrapped round his body as a winding-sheet. Singular to relate, Captain Cook landed soon after the murder, and traded as if nothing had occurred. Would Cook's ship's crew have acted thus if one of them had been slain?"* > Thomson, "The Story of New Zealand," voL i. p. 231. CAPTAIN COOK IN AUSTRALIA. 203 From New Zealand Captain Cook sailed north- wards to the Australian coast, first touching at Cape Howe, in Victoria, but not finding a convenient landing-place till they were in Botany Bay. " While the master was sounding the entrance," says the liistorian, " the ship lay off, and observed some natives who were upon the shore watching tliera. > As the vessel neared, they retired to the top of a little eminence. Soon after, the pinnace, which was employed in sounding, came close to them, and the natives did all they could to induce the master to land. But they were all armed with ' long pikes and wooden scimitars,' as the master said, and therefore he returned to the ship. The natives who had not followed the boat, seeing the ship approach, used many threatening gestures, and brandished their weapons. They were all painted for battle, as the custom is amongst them. The paint generally con- sists of white pipeclay, smeared all over the face and along the arms, across the ribs, and, in fact, in every sort of pattern, making them look exactly like skeletons. The weapon like a scimitar, which was evidently a boomerang, they brandished most of all; and they seemed, says Cook, to talk to each other with great earnestness. Notwithstanding all this, Cook continued to sail up the bay, and early in the afternoon anchored under the south shore, about two miles within the entrance. As he came in he saw on either side of the bay a few huts, of the usual wretched character of the Australian dwelling, and several natives sitting near them. Under the south head he saw four small canoes, with one man in each. They were striking fish with a long spear, 204 EAKLY AUSTRALASIAN DISCOVEEIES. They ventured very near the surf in their fragile barks; and were so engaged in their employment that they did not see the ship go by them, though it passed within a quarter of a mile. Opposite to where the ship anchored there were seven or eight huts. While they were hauling out the boat, an old ► woman and three children were seen to come out of the forest with firewood. Several children in the huts came out to meet her at the same time. She looked very attentively at the ship, but did not seem very anxious about it. She then kindled a fire ; whereupon the four fishermen rowed on to the land, hauled up their boats, and commenced to dress the fish for their meal. The ship did not excite their astonishment in the least. This apathy is one of the most distinctive features in the character of the Australian savage. Preparations having been com- pleted, the crew prepared to land. They proposed doing so where the huts were ; and hoped that, as they cared so little about the ship, the natives would remain and communicate with them. In this they were disappointed. As soon as the boat approached the rocks, two of the men came down to dispute the landing, and the rest ran away. Each of the two champions was armed with a lance about ten feet long, and a woomra, or throwing-stick. They brandished their weapons in a very daring way, though they were only two to forty, and called continually, in a strange harsh language, what was evidently a warning to the explorers not to land. Cook, admiring their courage, ordered his men to lie upon the oars, while he tried to pacify them. He threw them beads and ornaments, which THE AUSTKALIAN ABORIGINES. 205 they seized eagerly, and seemed well j)leased with them. But all inducements to allow the boat's crew to land were thrown away. Cook tried to intimate to them that nothing but water was wanted. But it was no use ; they seemed resolved to defend their country from invasion. One was a mere lad, the other about middle age ; and yet there they stood before their huts, confronting forty men, rather than yield their ground. A musket was fired between them. At the report, one dropped his bundle of spears ; but he recollected himself in a moment, and stood again on the defensive. A charge of small shot was now fired at the legs of the elder. Upon this he retreated to the huts, and Cook and his men immediately landed. But the battle was not over. Scarcely had they set their feet upon the sand when the savage returned. He was armed with a shield this time, hoping thus to protect his bleeding legs. Both savages threw spears where the men stood thickest, but they easily avoided them. Another charge of small shot was given ; and this completed the victory. Native legs could stand it no longer, so they were immediately put to another use. After the retreat of the blacks. Cook went to the huts, and found there three or four children huddled together, and evidently in the greatest state of fear. This was the cause of the heroic resistance of the two natives." -^ Captain Cook made some further explorations in Botany Bay ; but here, as elsewhere in the course of his northward voyage, he was regarded with sullen 1 Woods, "History of tlie Discovery and Exploration of Australia," vol. i. pp. 39-11. 206 EAELY AUSTKALASIAN DISCOVERIES. aversion by the natives. They rejected his presents ; and when they did not obstinately oppose him, avoided all intercourse with him. He sailed all along the eastern shore of Australia, for the first time clearly defining its appearance and configura- tion ; and, having passed Cape York, landed at the curious rock known as Booby Island, from one of whose lofty summits he took his last look at Australia. In 1773 he returned to New Zealand, and also visited Tasmania, and to both of these islands he \> ent again in 1777 ; but he added little, on either of these occasions, to the information he had acquired in his first and most famous voyage. That voyage excited much interest in Europe, and led to many other expeditions to the Australasian regions. De Surville, a French navigator, went to New Zealand in 1769, and treated its natives with gross treachery and cruelty ; and Marion du Fresne, another Frenchman, though perhaps with less inten- tion of doing evil, engaged in yet more disastrous strife with the aborigines of both New Zealand and Tasmania, whom he visited in 1772. In 1785 La Perouse was sent by the French Government on an intended voyage round the world, which was to surpass all previous exploits of that sort in the value of its contributions to geographical science and natural histor}'. He proceeded as far as Botany Bay, where he anchored in January 1788 ; but there he disappeared, and the voyages undertaken in search of him or his remains almost vie in interest '^'.^h those by which, in our own time, and in very different FEENCH EXPLOHEUS. 207 scenes, it was sought to discover the fate of Sir John Franklin. But the work of Australasian discovery was chiefly to be carried on by Captain Cook's own countrymen. CHAPTER XVIII. THE FIRST AUSTRALIAN COLOXV. THE CONVICT SETTLEMENT IN NEW SOTTH WALES — ITS FIRST TROUBLES — THE EVIL HABITS OE THE COLONISTS — THE BE- GINNING OF BETTER WAYS — GOVERNOR MACQUARIE — AUSTRA- LIAN DISCOVERERS : FLINDERS AND BASS — INLAND EXPEDI- TIONS — THE PROGRESS OF NEW SOUTH WALES. [1787-1821.] N 1723, not very long after Dampier's visit to the distant country then known as New Holland, it was proposed by Colone! Piirry that an English colony should he there planted ; and the proposal was revived almost as soon as the result of Captain Cook's researches was announced. But England, then busy with the defence of Canada, and with her efforts to bring back the inhabitants of tlie United States to subjection, was not ready to take in hand the formation of a settlement in so remote a region. The American war, however, in the end, gave encouragement to the new enterprise. One use to which the now inde- pendent colonies had been put, was the sending thither a number of criminals, nearly two thousand in every year, for whom no room was to be found in the crowded gaols at home ; and when the old ways of transportation were cut off, new ways had to be discovered. Then Cook's discoveries were thought of. In 1784 an Act of Parliament was passed, empowering King George ill. and his Council to ITS CUMMENCEMENT. 209 appoint some place beyond tlie seas to which offen- ders niigh". be conveyed ; and in 1786 it was decided that they should be sent to the eastern coast of New Holland and the neighbouring islands. Thus the colonization of Australia was begun. With Captain Arthur Phillip, Il.N., as commander of the expedition, and governor of the projected settlement, a small fleet left England on the 13th of May 1787. On board were 565 male and 192 female prisoners, with 208 officers and soldiers, and 65 women and children. It entered Botany Bay in January 1788 ; but Captain Phillip, not deeming the harbour safe enough, sailed northward for a little dis- tance, and thus reached Port Jackson, with Sydney Cove close to it. Here he halted with his party of convicts, and their guards and servants, on the 26th of January. A few rude buildings were put together ; and early in March the unwilling colonists were landed, and employed in the construction of a more permanent home in New South Wales, as it was called. The work was not easy, as the colonists had no liking for it. They took every opportunity of escap- ing, and were caught with difficulty, if caught at all. Numbers perished in the woods of hunger, or by the hands of the natives. Others, without running away, were too idle to be of use, and severe measures had to be resorted to, by which the whole progress of the settlement was hindered. The town of Sydney was slowly built ; but the crops planted on the rugged soil were not properly tended, and the cattle brought out from England were recklessly killed or lost. A ship, intended to proceed to China for supplies, was 210 THE FIRST AUSTRALIAN COLONY. wrecked, and another, coming with ample store of provisions from England, was lost on the way out. By these misfortunes the colony was brought almost to starvation. Many died. Fresh cargoes of con- victs arrived ct intervals ; but the food that came with them did not suffice for the wants of the older colonists as well as those for whom it was intended. The first five yt;ars passed painfully, and the settle- ment of Kew South Wales was only saved from destruction by the exemplary zeal and forbearance of the governor. By him the flagging spirits of the colonists were quickened ; disaffection was stayed in a community especially fitted to become mutinous, and his constant self-sacrifice endeared him to all alike, and promoted union among all. He even sought to civilize the stubborn natives; and, when this was found impracticable, succeeded in prevent- ing his people from acting towards them with the cruelty and injustice too often shown by colonists in their dealings with inferior races. Captain Phillip returned to England in 1792. By that time the early troubles of the colony had been in great measure ovr come. The fields were in culti- vation ; herds had been naturalized, and supplies of provisions came from Europe with tolerable regu- larity. These supplies from Europe, however — not merely articles of general commerce to be exchanged for Australian produce, but stores of food and cloth- ing for which no return was made — were necessary to the colony, both then and for long after. It was a convict settlement, not expected to be self-support- ing, although it was hoped that the prisoners would be gradually induced to contribute more and more to ITS CONVICT POPULATION. 211 their own maintenance. And it continued to be little more than a convict settlement, to a great extent unproductive, until 1821. Its history up to that time, during a period of thirty-four years in all, was marked by many painful details. Its governors, after Captain Phillip, were military and naval men, employed chiefly in seeing that the unwilling colonists performed their task- work, and in attempting to maintain something like prison discipline in a prison thirty times as large as the island of Great Britain. All that prison was not then habitable by white men. A vast proportion of it was wholly unexplored. The settlement of New South Wales comprised only a very small portion of the colony now bearing that name, and was com- prised within the immediate neighbourhood of Sydney and Botany Bay. But the great districts north, west, and south afforded easy means for the escape of con- victs from the garrison in charge of them ; and while many thus escaped, generally to die, or be for ever lost sight of, the task of restraining them was a con- stant source of trouble, and added greatly to the difficulties in the way of good government among the convicts who remained. It gave them a certain power over their masters, since, to keep them from running away, they were allowed much licence which ought to have been avoided. Their governors must not be blamed too severely for their failures in doing work that it was hardly possible to do well. But their failures were often egregious. Arrogant and despotic in some of their actions, they were culpably lenient in others. The murderers, forgers, and con- victs, guilty of a hundred different offences, who 212 THK FIEST AUSTRALIAN COLONY. formed the bulk of the colonists, and who, if they began to settle down into peaceable ways, were every year contaminated by fresh tides of criminals, formed a lawless and disreputable community. Vice was nearly everywhere rampant. ]\Ien exiled from Eng- land for their vices were often entrusted with functions for which virtue was pre-eminently needed. Convicts became judges and clergymen. The leaders of society were often men whose violation of social laws had been so gross that they would not be tolerated in the mother-country; and, as a con- sequence, nearly every sort of dishonesty was the rule, and none but the honest were punished. Licentiousness and drunkenness, parents of every sort of evil, were almost universal. " Not ojily," we are told, "was undisguised concubii-.^^e thought no shame, but the sale of wives was not an uufrequent practice. A present owner of broad acres and large herds in New South Wales is the offspring of an union strangely brought about by the purchase of a wife from her husband for four gallons of rum. Eum supplied the place of coin. Lands, houses, and pro- perty of every description, real and personal, were bought and paid for in rum. It is recorded of one of the oflficers of the 102d Regiment, that, a hundred acres of land having been distributed in half-acre allotments as free grants amongst some soldiers of the regiment, he planted a hogshead of rum upon the ground, and bouglit the whole hundred acres with the contents of the hogshead. A moiety of this land, a few years ago, realized £20,000 at a sale in Sydney."^ '' Therry, " Reminiscences of Thirty Years' Residence in New South Wales and Victoria" (18 Wcstgarth, " The Colony of Victoria," pp. 47, 48. 248 NEW SOUTU WALES AND POET PHILLIP. that a plan was being hatclied by the natives for murdering them. To warn them of the danger, he sought them out, and, very soon after the appear- ance of Batman's party at Indented Head, showed himself among them. Great was tlieir astonish- ment at seeing a man, evidently no Australian, though more than thirty years of nakedness had half-browned his skin, who vainly tried to address them in their own language. Hardly even could he understand their speech to him, until one, cutting a slice from a loaf, offered him " bread." That word acted like a spell. He found himself able to converse in broken terms, and soon he regained his native language. Batman then found him very useful in his dealings with the natives, until his disgust at the treachery shown towards his protectors during so long a time caused him to hold aloof from the negotiations. For a few years he lived in the new town of ^Melbourne, whence he afterwards went to Hobarton, and there he died in 1857. Poor Buckley had little reason to be satisfied with the new tide of enterprise that invaded the districts over which he had wandered so long. " One great cause of his distress," we are told, " was the mutual ill-will and misunderstanding that were daUy extend- ing between the colonists and the natives. The former, pouring in one after another with their flocks, rushed away with hot haste into the interior, anxious to receive a share of the fine pastures lying still unoccupied, and ready at nature's hand for imme- diate use. It was Buckley's earnest wish that the poor natives, whose territories were thus summarily disposed over their heads, should be approached with THE SETTLEMENT OF PORT PHILLIP. 249 consideration on the subject, and witli a patient effort to gain their consent and good-will, and he thought that he might himself have been successful in dealing with them. But as all such preliminaries seemed mere waste of time to our eager and com- peting colonists, there was a lamentable result be- tween them and the natives in constant mutual distrust, frequent hostilities, and repeated atrocities on either side. Many of the natives were shot down as though little better than so much game ; and they, in their turn, stole sheep and murdered shepherds as often as their fewer means and opportunities gave them the power." ^ But that ugly work has attended nearly all intercoui'se between Englishmen and the inferior races whom they have had to dis- possess in their career of colonial aggrandizement ; and perhaps it was less extensive and disgraceful in the Port Phillip District than in many other parts of the world. The new settlement grew apace. On the 25th of May 1836 it contained an English population of 177, and in April 1837 the number of colonists had risen to 450. In the previous month Sir Eichard Bourke, the governor of New South AVales, had visited the colony, and superintended the laying out of the towns of Melbourne and Geelong. The land therein was sold by auction. One half acre in Melbourne realized £80, more than double the usual price. Two years afterwards it was re-sold for £5000, and about twelve years later it was sold again for £40,000. In 1835, on the first report of the new settlement 1 Westgarth, p. 55. 250 NEW SOUTH WALES AND POET PHILLIP. it was formally claimed as a province of New South Wales. Jn 1836 Captain Lonsdale was sent to act as chief magistrate and representative of the Sydney Government. In 1839 he was succeeded by Mr Charles Joseph Latrobe, who, first as superintendent and afterwards as governor, directed the affairs of Port Phillip during fifteen years, Captain Lonsdale being his able secretary. The hmits of his jurisdic- tion at first comprised about half of the present territory, excluding Gipps' Land and most of the Murray and Wimmera Districts. In 1842 these regions were added to it ; and the Port Phillip Dis- trict, also called the Southern District of New South Wales, was enlarged to the dimensions of the more modern Victoria, comprising an area of 86,831 squarf miles. Then, too, it was admitted to a share in the new constitution given to New South Wales. The Legislative Council was now made to contiit of fifty-four members, eighteen of whom were nomi- nated by the Crown, the rest being elected by aU the colonists entitled to the franchise, fixed at a £20 annual rental. Six out of the thirty-six representa- tives were chosen in the Port Phillip District. The progress of New South Wales up to 1839 has already been described. The good Sir Eichard Bourke, after a brief interregnum, was succeeded as governor by Sir George Gipps in 1838. The change was not fortunate, though the new governor, a high-minded but rather tyrannical ruler, was not to a great extent responsible for the troubles that arose during his term of office. While the Port Phillip District was rising in importance, the older and central portion of New South Wales suffered some serious reverses. TROUBLES IN NEW SOUTH WALES. 251 New immigrants arrived in large numbers, and trade was active, but this show of prosperity was iictitious. Perhaps, indeed, bota trade '.lud immigration extended for a time too rapidly. At any rate, during the first few years following the coni'erment of the new constitution, in 18 i2, there was a speedy falling back of the old tide of wealth. " It was notorious," said a speaker in the I^egislative Clouncil, "that in 1843 and 1844 nine-tenths of the houses, lands, and mansions of the proprietors were mortgaged up to their full value. As to the sqaatting interest, it was known that gentlemen with 10,000 sheep could not get credit for a ba" of sugar or a chest of tea. The merchants were without custom, traders without business, and mechanics and artizans were pining for want in the streets." The Go^ ernment was not very wise in its efibrts to improve this state of things ; but unreason- able complaints were made against it by the opposi- tion party that grew up in the Legislative Council and throughout the colony. Faction prevailed, which, if it issued in good, also brought fresh difficulties to the settlement. This time of trouble, how- ever, was perhaps only a necessary sequel to the change by which New South. Wales passed finally from its first condition as a great receptacle for con- victs into the hands of free and self-governing colonists. The tide of fortune soon set in again, and now the prosperity of the colony resulted more than ever from the squatters, and their zeal in sheep-farming and preparing wool for the European market. " A ' squatter ' is a term first applied to the early emi- grants in America, who settled or squatted down upon a small piece of land in the forest there, cleared 252 NEW SOUTH WALES AND PORT PHILLIP. it of the native timber, and grew wheat or other grain and vegetables upon it, sufficient for the main- tenance of his own family. The surplus he disposed of at any market convenient to the spot on which he squatted. The American squatters, as a class, are generally persons of mean repute and small means, who have taken unauthorized possession of those patches of land. The squatters of New South Wales form a very different class of persons. They are amongst the wealthiest of the land, occupying, by the tenure of Crown leases or annual licences, thou- sands and tens of thousands of acres. Young mer of good family and connection in England, retired officers of the army and navy, graduates of Oxford and Cambridge, are all amongst them. To these must be added most of the settlers, a class of persons who lease large tracts of land in their own right, obtained by purchase or free grant from the Crown, but which, by reason of the land soon becoming insufficient for the support of their rapidly increasing herds and flocks, oblige them to take up stations, as it is termed, in unoccupied parts of the country ; so that the principal settlers are also the principal squatters — settlers as to their own lands, squatters as to the Crown lands they occupy."^ The method of squatting and the nature of its ser- vices in the development of New South Wales will best be shown by quoting here part of a squatter's own narrative of his career. " In the month of June, 1832," he says, " being then twenty years of age, I left Glasgow for Sydney. I was induced to do so from reading a book upon Australia. My father, 1 Therry, pp. 240, 241. A squatter's history. 253 who was an extensive farmer near Glasgow, having asked me, while at home during the holidays, to assist at some work upon the farm, I became rather discontented, and told him I had read such favourable accounts of New South Wales that I wished he would allow me to go there. He said he would pay my passage out and give me £50 to bring me home, as he knew I would not remain long there. On my arrival in Sydney I deUvered several letters of introduction, but found them of no use. A list of passengers who had come out in the ship having been published in the Sydney papers, and my name appearing with the description of ' farmer from Scot- land,' I had several inquiries from stockholders to ascertain what I was going to do. Among others was Mr Cadell, and he recommended me very strong'' to see the Colonial Secretary, Alexander M'Leay, Esq., who was then in want of a manager. Being admitted to a personal interview with that worthy and kind-hearted man, I entered into an engagement with him to take charge of his station, about 150 miles from Sydney, with about 2000 sheep, at a salary of £40 a year, with one per cent, upon the clip of wool the first year, and an additional one per cent, each succeeding year. In eight or ten days I left Sydney for his station, situated between Goulburn and Yass. On arriving at the station the person in charge handed over to me the sheep, with some stores, and about a dozen assigned convict ser- vants, and he left on the same day. I now found myself, without any colonial experience, placed alone in a position of great responsibility. In the first place, I made myself acquainted with the nature of 254 NSW SOUTH WALES AND PORT PHILLIP. the country, the sheep, and the servants I had to deal with. I gave additicjal allowances to those servants who proved themselves honest and careful. The result of this system, together with a careful and economical management, was a rapid and steady increase in the flocks. In 1836 a severe disease broke out among the sheep, which spread rapidly, and in some inscances almost exterminated the flocks of many of the settlers. Mj loss did not exceed one fifth of the entire stock during the three or four years that this disease prevailed. I had observed that, even when in perfect health, the sheep Avere fond of licking rock-salt, and that they evidently improved upon it. I therefore resolved on forming a station on the Murrumbidgee, where I had heard of the exist- ence of salt-bush plains, and there I took up a tract of country with thirty miles of frontage to the river for Mr M'Leay, and about two miles of frontage for myself. I had to pay £10 a year, and Mr M'Leay about £30 foi his stations. These proved excellent and healthy runs, but, being frther out than any squatter, I found at first some aifficidty with the natives, who »vere inclined to attack the shepherds and drive of.' sheep. By treating them with kind- ness, however, I succeeded in making them useful in sheep-washing and such-like work. I had also then, being 400 miles from Sydney, great difficiilty in getting up provisions — a difficulty which was increased when, a few years afterwai-ds, I pushed out 100 miles farther, and took up additional stations on the Lachlan river. During the last few years, whilst I was in charge of Mr M'Leay's stations, I had been also engaged in purchasing sheep for my- A SQUATTER S HISTORY. 255 self. Upon my ceasing to act for him, he made me a present of 1000 picked ewes, which, with the sheep I had already purchased for myself, gave me a considerable stock to go on upon. Soon after, about the years 1842-1844, so great was the depreciation of all kinds of colonial produce, that, although my flocks were healthy and increasing in number, I found, in common with all other settlers, the greatest difficulty in obtaining the necessary money to meet my current obligations, such as wages, sup- phes for the stations, and the like ; and it was only by exercising the strictest economy and by hav- ing saved a small amount, which now proved very valuable, that I escaped being obliged to part with my sheep for almost notliing — the fate of many at a time when produce of all kinds was unsaleable, and an advance of money could only be obtained upon ruinoiis terms. But in the year 1845 a considerable rise took place in the price of stock, from the fact of their value, when boiled down for tallow, having been ascertained by Mr Henry O'Brien, of Yass Plains ; and about the same time an annual assessment was laid upon sheep and cattle, for the purpose of increas- ing the colonial revenues. As our profits increased, the Government increased our taxation. The present stock upon my stations" — in 1863 — "consists of about 100,000 sheep, from 7000 to 8000 head of cattle, and from 700 to 800 head of horses. This is the amount independent of the annual reductions by the sale of a considerable portion to the butcher for meat, and of supplies to new squatters, and support of the men employed on the stations."^ 1 Therry, pp. 259-2C5. " After twenty-eight years of meritorious 256 NEW SOUTH WALES AND POET PHILLIP. That squatter's history illustrates the career of thousands of enterprising colonists in Australia. Starting from Sydney, they gradually extended their sheep farms inland and far down to the south, till, crossing the Murrumbidgee, and entering Australia Felix, they met like adventurers who had gone north, east, and west from Melbourne, and by their enter- prise raised the Port Phillip District to importance. In 1846 the central provinces of New South Wales contained 154,534: inhabitants, and there were 32,879 in Port Phillip, while the colonial sailors in all the ports numbered 2196, making the entire population 189,609, considerably more than twice as great as it had been ten years before. In March 1851 the total number of inhabitants had risen to 247,262 ; 189,951 in New South Wales proper, and 77,345 in Port Phillip. About ten million sheep were then collected in the various squatters' stations, and the wool pro- duced from them and imported to Europe was worth about £1,500,000. In that year wool ceased to be the one great staple of Australian commerce. The gold discoveries afforded a new and more glittering field for enter- prise, by which the whole continent was to be enriched, and the fortunate Disi^rict of Port Phillip was to be especially aided in its rapid career of pros- perity. But already the young settlement had made wonderful advances, and was threatening to outrun the parent colony in the race of wealth. Starting with its population of 177 in 1836, it had 11,738 toil," says Mr Tlierry of this squatter, "he returned to England ■witli a permanent well assured income (which I believe I much understate) of between X'20,000 and £30,000 a year." PROGRESS OF THE COLONY. 257 inhabitants in 1841; 32,875 in 1846, and, as has been just said, 77,345 in 1851. Of these 22,143 were in the town of Melbourne, about 8000 in Geelong, and the remaining 36,000, or more, were distributed in Belfast, Portland, and other smaller towns and villages along and near the coast, both east and west, and among the settlements and squatting stations spread over the fertile regions stretching up to the northern limits of the province. The development of Melbourne within this short space of time, at the close of which it was still in its infancy, illustrates the progress of the whole District of Port Phillip. " In January 1838," we are told, " it consisted of a nucleus of huts, embowered in the forest foliage, and had much the appearance of an Indian village. Two wooden houses served the purpose of inns for the settlers who frequented the place. A small wquare wooden building, with an old ship's bell suspended from a tree, was used as a church or chapel by the various religious denominations. Two or three so-caUed shops formed emporiums for the sale of every description of useful articles. The flesh of the kangaroo and varieties of wQd fowl were abundantly used, for fresh mutton was stiU scarce, and beef seldom seen. A manuscript newspaper, established by Fawkner, one of the enterprising men to whom England is indebted for the formation of this settlement, was the organ of public opinion in the new colony." ^ Brick houses soon took the .place of wood, and in the course of a few years handsome buildings of stone were erected for public uses. Wide roads were marked out, and market-places * Martin, vol. ii. p. 598. .^ R 258 NEW SOUTH WALES AND POET PHILLIP. were appointed. " The streets," it was said in 1850, " are planned at right angles, the larger ones being a hundred feet broad, the smaller about thirty. The principal street is, strangely enough, named Collins, after the brave officer who, when directed in 1803 to form a settlement at Port Phillip, declared it to be ' all barren,' and abandoned it as a hopeless under- taking. Elizabeth Street is situated in a hollow between two considerable acclivities to the east- ward and westward, called the Eastern and Western Hills. The streets and by-ways of Melbourne, previous to 1842, were frequently rendered impass- able from the operation of the weather and the ceaseless traffic of ponderous bullock-drays. Thick gum-tree stumps and deep ruts, forming vast reservoirs of mud, were varied by the intersecting gullies of temporary water-courses ; and many an anxious wife and mother scanned the deep abyss of the urban excavations in search of a drunken husband or a wayward child. A visitor, writing in 1842, declares himself to have been startled. Boon after his arrival in the colony, by a paragraph in the newspaper, headed ' Another child drowned in the streets of Melbourne.' In the following year, however, the stumps were removed by order of the town council, and the occasion of frequent accidents was thus removed." ^ With the Melbourne of twenty years ago may be compared the Sydney of the same period. The capital of New South Wales was sixty years old, and con- tained about 40,000 inhabitants, with nearly 10,000 more in its £,uburbs, in 1848. "Its haven," it was ' Martin, vol. ii. p. 599. MELBOUKNE AND SYDNEY TWENTY YEARS AGO. 259 then said, " wliicli is aboat fifteen miles long, and in some places three miles broad, is completely land- locked. Along the water-side, except that portion occupied by the demesne contiguous to Government House, tliere are wharves, stores, ship-yards, mills, manufactories, distilleries, breweries, etc. Behind these, in irregular succession, rise numerous public and private buildings. The streets are laid out generally at right angles. Thirty-four of them have each a carriage-way of not less than tliirty-six feet, several from forty to sixty feet, and a footway of not less than twelve feet. Their length varies from one to tliree miles. They are well paved or macadamized, regularly cleaned, watered, and lit with gas. George Street and Pitt Street have continuous ranges of handsome stone or brick edifices, with shops that would do no discredit to Eegent Street or Oxford Street in London."^ Sydney and its outlying districts had shaken off the contamination of their early state as a convict settlement, and the vast colony of New South Wales was now a thriving haunt of enterprising freemen, in. which the resources already broiight into use pro- mised for it almost bou^idless expansion, although a new and yet more brilliant means of its advancement Vr'as yet to be discovered. ^ Martin, vol. ii. p. 454. CHAPTER XXII. SOUTH AUSTRALIA. THE DISCOVERY AND COLONIZATION OF SOUTH AUSTRALIA — THE WAKEFIELD SCHEME AND ITS FAILURE — EARLY TROUBLES OF THE COLONY — THEIR SPEEDY REMOVAL — THE COPPER MINES — THE EFFECT OF THE GOLD DISCOVERIES IN VICTORIA — LATER PROGRESS OF THE COLONY ; COPPER, WOOL, WHEAT, AND WINE — ITS PRESENT CONDITION. [1822-1869.] HE south coast of Australia is barren, and in every respect useless and unfavourable for colonization." So said Captain King, one of the most enterprising followers of Captain Flinders in the work of exploration along the southern shores of the great island continent in 1822. Soon after that, however, in 1827 and the following years. Captain Sturt made his famous inland expedi- tions and discoveries, in the course of which he tracked the Murray through a large part of its winding, and visited the country between Lake Victoria and St Vincent's Gulf, now the splendid harbour of Adelaide. His report was very different to Captain King's. " Cursory as my glance was," he said, " I could not but think I was leaving behind me the fullest reward of our toil in a country that would ultimately render our discoveries valuable. My eye never fell on a region of more promising aspect or of more favourable position than that Avhich occupies the country between the lalce and the ranges of St Vincent's Gulf, and, 200 THE COLONIZATION OF SOUTH AUSTRALIA. 261 continuing northerly, stretches away without any visible boundary." That favourable description induced the Governor of New South AVales, in 1831, to send Captain Barker on a visit to the country around Lake Victoria, with a view of deciding as to its fitness for an English settlement. Captain Barker was attacked and killed by the natives ; but his subordinate, Mr Kent, went back, to speak of the country in terms yet more favour- able than those used by Captain iSturt. Ilich soU, fine pasturage, and ample supplies of fresh water, always a great attraction in Australia, united, he said, in making the district one "in whose valleys the exile might hope to build for himself and for his fpmily a peaceful and prosperous retreat." Prompt measures were taken for enabling, not exiles, but willing adventurers, to find peace and prosperity in the newly explored district. The move- ment, however, did not begin in New South Wales, which had already founded the convict colony of Van Dieman's Land, and was now starting the free settle- ment of Port Phillip. The project for establishing South Australia was started in England by a group of philanthropists and speculators, anxioas to try a new experiment in colonization, which was known as the Wakefield scheme, its chief advocate being Mr Edward Gibbon Wakefield. In the older Australian colonies, and in nearly all the other dependencies of Great Britain, immigration had been encouraged by offers of land at very low prices, and as the enterprise of the first settlers made property more valuable, the land was still disposed of for whatever price it could fetch at public auction. Mr Wakefield urged a differ- HSSI 262 SOUTH AUfci'RALIA. ent policy. "He hold that, by placing a high value on the unreclaimed lands of a new country, and for- warding a labouring population out of the sale of those lands, the emigrants would of necessity work at low wages, as the purchase of the dear lauds would be above their means, thereby securing the capitalist investing in the land a large interest for his money, and forming at once a community of labourers and artizans who would minister to the benefits of the land- holders. Besides these large landholders, a class of small farmers was to be induced to emigrate, by dis- posing of the land in small sections to be cleared and cultivated by their families."^ This foolish plan found so much favour that a committee for its adop- tion was formed in 1831, and the committee grew into a South Australian Colonization Association, founded in 1834, which in the same year obtained a charter for the enforcement of its views in the region visited by Captain Sturt. In that way was originated the colony of South Australia, comprising an almost square block of about 300,000 square miles, cut out of the south-western part of the original New South Wales. A large capital was subscribed ; and in 1836 Captain (after- wards Sir John) Hindmarsh went out with the first party of intending landowners, or their agents, and an organized body of " surveyors, architects, engineers, clerks, teachers, lawyers, and clergymen." These first ingTedients for a ready-made colony landed at the mouth of the Glenelg, in St Vincent's Gulf, in De- cember, and proceeded seven miles up the river to lay the foundations of Adelaide, appointed as the 1 Westgai-th, "Australia," p. 215. THE WAKEFIELD SCHEME AND ITS ISSUE. 263 capital of the settlement. Other instalments quickly followed, and the population amounted to 6000 in 1838, and to 10,000 in 1839. The experiment failed dismally. Captain Hind- marsh did not satisfy his employers, and he was succeeded by Colonel Gawler in 1838. " Wlien Colonel Gawler arrived in the colony," says a pane- gyrist of the project, " he found the government machinery in a great state of derangement. The country surveys were not well advanced. Persons Avho had gojie out with land-orders and means for rendering their agricultural operations profitable, had fallen into land speculations after the sale of town allotments, or had engaged in building operations at a high cost in the capital, and brought themselves to a stand still. Labourers, who ought to have been dis- persed over the country, were congregated in the town, demanding and receiving, as long as the money lasted, high wages for works that could not be re- munerative to those who constructed them. The true objects of colonization had been lost sight of in the whirl of speculative excitement ; and when the funds, brought into the colony for legitimate employ- ment, had been nearly all sent away for the purchase of provisions, and hundreds of tons of flour had been imported at from £80 to £100 per ton, which should have been produced on the spot for £15 or £20, the prospect of a general coUapse appeared to be in- evitable."^ It was not averted by the measures resorted to by the new governor, binding his colony bankrupt and its inhabitants on the verge of ruin, if * Forster, " South Australia : its Progress and Prosperity," p. 51. 264 SOUTH AUSTRALIA. not of starvation, while fresh immigrants, tempted by the nominally high wages and the fabulous price of laud produced by stock-jobbing mai. oeuvres, were arriving, he was led by a mistaken feeling of generosity to embark in a reckless expenditure, and to attempt remedies which only increased the disease. Great public works were constructed by him in order that the impoverished residents might get wages; but, his exchequer was empty, and he had to pay his labourers and contractors by drafts upon the imperial treasury. The drafts, being wholly un- authorized, were dishonoured; and the colony was only saved from utter destruction by a loan from the English Government. Colonel Gawler, who, with a revenue of £20,000 a year', had incurred expenses to seven times that amount, was recalled ; and his suc- cessor. Captain (now Sir George) Grey, who arrived in May 18 il, was instructed, at whatever cost of temporary trouble, to pursue a different policy, and one likely to bring about a better state of affairs. This he did with praiseworthy prudence and energy. The projectors of the colony, too, had already, to a great extent, learnt the folly of their original schemes, aal where they stni proposed to act unwisely they were prevented by the Government. The colony ceased to be a private speculation, and became a Crown dependency. Many of the mischief-makers who had come to it ir. tliG first two or three years, now quitted it in disgust, or, ruined by their own misdeeds, sank into iusignificn i, and their places were taken by fresh adventureio, with whom came crowds of new immigrants, aware of ' ' evil circum- stances with which they had to coi^.oud, and of the THE GIlO^^'TH OF THE COLONY. 265 real resources of the country by whicli it was easy for wise men to prosper. South Australia did very soon "begin to prosper. The population rose from 14,610 in 1840 to 22,390 in 1845, the acres of land in cultivation from 2503 to 26,218, and the value of colonial exports from £15,650 to £131,800. But in the same period the public expenditure had sunk from £169,966 to £36,182, the number of public-houses from 107 to 85, and the number of criminals from 47 to 22. In 1845 Captain Grey left South Australia to be governor of New Zealand. During his four years' rule he had rescued the colony from bankruptcy, and placed it in the high road of prosperity, although much of that road was still to be nigged. Under his encouragement, and by the enterprise of the newer colonists, much of the fertile and beautiful land around Adelaide had been brought under cultivation, and far larger tracts had been appropriated by sheep- farmers. In 1845 large quantities of wheat and other grain were exported, though more than half the exports were in wool, amounting to 1,331,888 pounds, which were valued at £72,236. In the following years the wool trade continued to increase rapidly, as weU as the commerce in corn and various other articles of food. But another commodity was destined to become the main source of South Australian wealth. In 1842 copper was found at Kapunda, fifty miles north-east of Adelaide, and in the following year the first ton of ore raised there yielded £23. Even before that lead had been discovered, and the mines continued to be worked successfully ; though soon the costlier metal 266 SOUTH AUSTRALIA. became a far more important article of trade. The second year's yield of the Kapnnda mine produced £4009, and the thi-d £10,351. That was only the small beginning of copper- mining in the colony. In 1845 ore was found by a shepherd at Burra Burra, about forty mUes north of Kapunda. The report of his discovery caused the immediate purchase of 20,000 acres of land in that locality by two rival parties of adventurers. " These two parties," we are told, " were called respectively the 'nobs' and the 'snobs,' the former representing the aristocracy of the colony, the latter the merchants and trades-people. The nobs were unwilling to combine with the snobs in a joint-stock companj'- for carrying on the mine, and therefore, although they united to purchase the ground — as neither party could, unaided, raise the hard cash — as soon as the survey was completed the land was divided by draw- ing a line through the centre from east to weot. Lots were then drawn, and the snobs became the fortunate proprietors of this northern portion of the survey."^ This proved an almost boundless source of wealth. The ore was so near the surface that it could almost be taken up by hand, and when that most accessible treasure was all appropriated, the working of the lower veins was found to be singularly easy. One lucky proprietor who had risked £500 at starting, was three years afterwards in the receipt of £11,000 a year. During the first six years 80,000 tons of ore were raised at Burra Burra, and the profits, divided between the few shareholders, amounted to £438,552, while a larger sum went to enrich the * Austin, "The Mines of South Australia." COPPER AKD GOLD. 267 labourers, merchants, and others, who had come to aid in tlie work, and by whom during the period a busy town liad been raised on the old sheep-walk. Other mines, about thirty in number, were also found and worked within the distance of a hundred miles from Adelaide ; and in 1849, only seven years after their first discovery, the copper raised from all exceeded 16,000 tons, and was worth £310,172. In 1850 the total exports from South Auscralia were valued at £545,839, and the population of the colony was 63,700, being treble that of 1845. In 1851, however, a wonderful change arose, and South Australia had to pass through a second time of troublp. Its copper, its wool, and its wheat had promised to make it before long the richest of all the Australian colonies, richer even than its nearest rival. Port Phillip, which then had only wool and wheat for its staple articles of commerce. But the promise was marred by the discovery of gold in that rival, the circiimstances and issue of which will have presently to be detailed. The immediate issue to Port Phillip was very disastrous. " For a time," said its Chamber of Commerce in 1852, "it seemed that the props of our material prosperity were about to fall. The streets of Adelaide were deserted, houses were aban- doned by their tenants, rents feU, and property became unmarketable. The shops of our retailers presented their tempting wares in vain. There was a general arrest put on all business; and this at a time when the stock of merchandise in the market was unprecedentedly heavy, and when the bill en- gagements of the mercantile community were larger 268 SOUTH AUSTRALIA, probaTbly than they had ever been before."^ A gi-eat many of the busiest labourers in South Australia being miners, they immediately hurried off to use their special skill in seeking for a mineral so much more valuable than copper. Within twelve months about 16,000 persons, chiefly men, and the most industri- ous inhabitants, nearly a fourth of the whole popula- tion, passed over to the neighbouring colony ; and those who remained suffered heavily by their absence. That depression, however, was only temporary ; and though the gold discoveries destroyed the hope which had been entertained that South Australia would attain supremacy among the trans-Indian colonies, it really profited immensely by them. Scanty supplies of gold were also found within its limits, and many of the old settlers now came back, recruited hj many fresh arrivals, to seek for the glittering treasure. Therein they were not very successful, but their enterprise restored and gave fresh life to the flagging trade of the colony. Great benefit resulted also from a clever expedient resorted to by the colonists and their new governor. Sir Henry Young. Judging that the next best thing to finding gold in their own territory was the bringing into it of the gold found elsewhere, they resolved to accept uncoined gold as currency. Offering for it a price higher than th'^ diggers and their agents could be sure to obtain if tliey sent it all the way to Europe, though less by about a shilling in the pound than it Avas worth according to the English standard, they induced the importation of v^ast quantities of it. Between February 1852, when the plan was adopted, 1 Forster, p. 62. EFFECTS OF THE GOLD DISCOVERIES. 2G'J and the following December, the gold tlius brought into Adelaide and converted into stamped ingots, was worth £1,395,208, and the supply was not diminished in the ensuing months. Much of this gold was hoarded and eventually taken to other markets, there to be sold at its full value, and thus to realize a considerable profit to the dealers; but much of it, as much as there was room for, circulated freely in the colony, and gave a great stimulus to trade. For the wheat and other produce of South Aus- tralia, also, there was a greatly increased demand in consequence of the rapid increase of population in the gold districts. Thus the colony reaped a large share of the wealth of the Australian El Dorado. " The population returned to resume their ordinary employments," says the historian; "the large amount of money put into circulation restored property to its former value ; and the colony commenced a new era of prosperity. It was pleasant to contemplate the marked improvement which had taken place in the circumstances of the community. The wives and families of returned diggers, many of whom had been left behind with very slender means when their husbands and parents set off" for Victoria, were now enabled to exhibit themselves in personal decorations which gave conclusive evidence of their increased resources. An extensive patronage was bestowed upon the drapers and jewellers of Adelaide, but not such as to interfere materially with the reproductive employment of the new'ly-acquired wealth. Farms which had been taken Avith right of purchase were speedily secured in fee-simple ; houses and stores were erected in town and country ; industrial opera- 270 SOUTH AUSTRALIA. tions were r;ntcred upon with renewed life and vigour, and that which was at first looked upon as a dire calamity turned out to be an extensive and unmiti- gated blessing."^ Since then the career of South Australia lias generally been one of rapid development. Sir Henry Young, who, after a short interval, succeeded George Grey, and was governor from 1848 to 1854, did much useful service to the colony, and after him it had a really able ruler, between 1853 and 1862, in Sir Ptichard IM'Donald. " During his term of office respon- sible government was inaugurated, and the political changes were introduced which materially altered the position of Her IMajesty's representative. Sir Eichard readily adapted himself to the new state of affairs, and settled dowTi as a constitutional governor, directed by the wishes of his ministerial advisers. He was full of physical and mental energy, in the prime of life, almost a giant in stature, and with a weU-cultivated mind. He visited all parts of the colony, and made himself personally acquainted with the wants and capabilities of nearly every district ; and being capable of enduring gxeat fatigue, he made lengthened joxirneys into the distant bush, so as to earn for himself almost the character of an explorer."^ Both by him and by his predecessor great care was taken in opening up roads to districts previously neglected and in improving the communi- cations between stations already occupied, whereby they were made more serviceable to one another, and to the colony at large. Eailways and tele- graphic lines began to be established between the 1 Forster, pp. 66, 67. ' Forster, pp. 77, 78. ITS RECENT PHOGRESS. 271 principal towns. Those towns were aided by many new institutions. The navigation of the two great rivers, the Murray and the Darling, was im- proved, and the coast was provided with lighthouses. The colony received a new constitution, by which the old Legislative Council was reorganized, and a new House of Assembly, elected by universal suffrage, was added to it in 1856 ; and the inhabitants, thus endowed with fuU rights of self-government, made, in the main, good use of their powers. By these means the colony has been enabled to advance steadily in all ways of social, commercial, and agricultural improvement. The mineral wealth of the country has been greatly developed. Besides the older mines, the chief being that at Burra Burra, many new ones have lately been opened. The "Wallaroo field, or Yorke's Peninsula, discovered by Captain Hughes in 18G0, and the Moonta mine, in the same strip of land, opened in the following year, are both richer and more extensive chan Burra Burra. " The place," it is said of this district, " is not, to the eye of a novice, a very likely one for mines. It is a vast expanse of flat, scrubby country, interspersed with open plains, covered with a dry and scanty herbage. Underneath is an unbroken crust of limestone, extend- ing over the entire area of the peninsula, and the whole seems as if it had, at a very recent geological period, emerged from the sea. Not a rock is to be seen anywhere, nor a hill, to break the even surface of the ground, nor a gully, nor a water-course of any description, for miles and miles. The scrubs are full of burrowing animals, and large holes are met with at every two or three hundred yards. These are said 272 BOUTII AUSTRALIA. to be wombat holes, but they are more frequently occupied by the wallaby, a sort of miniature kangaroo, upon which the natives feed extensively. In the operation of scratching their holes, the animals throw up minute specimens of the rocks beneath, and amongst theee particles was one day thrown up a small green stone, about the size of a pea, which on examination proved to be green carbonate of copper. The natural reflection that there was more where this came from, induced Captain Hughes to have a shaft sunk upon the spot, and, sure enough, at the depth of a few feet, he came upon a magnificent lode of ore, which has since been opened up through a large extent of country, and is yielding immense quantities of copper."^ In nearly every part of tlie district within a hundred miles north, south, east, and v/est of Ade- laide, copper has been found, or is likely to be founu; and there seems no limit, when the mstallurgic arts are properly established in the colony, to the amount of its mineral wealth. In 1866 the exports of this metal were valued at £584,509, though that was a poor year for the trade. In 1864 it yielded £677,096. Yet more lucrative is the wool trade. In 1864 were exported 16,092,095 pounds, worth £775,656 ; in 1866, 20,908,085 pounds, worth £1,064,487. More than 60,000 square miles, about a sixth of the whole colony, are now occupied as runs for nearly 5,000,000 sheep of fine merino breed, each worth about a £1. This trade, however, profitable as it is, is hardly equal to the results of squatting enterprise in Now South Wales and Victoria; while South Australia » Forster, pp. 361, 362. COPPER, WOOL, WHEAT, AND WINE. 273 surpasses both the other colonies in the value of its agricultural resources. To them and to its other neighbours it still serves as a granary. In 1864, a year of exceptional good fortune, besides all the native consumption, the exports of corn and flour were valued at £1,408,332; in 18G6, a year of depression, they were valued at £G29,19G. Other branches of the farmer's calling have yet to be developed, the most notable among them being vine-growing, which has lately begun to be an important occupation. The land so employed in 1864 comprised 5779 acres, and the yield was 606,365 gallons of wine. The trade is now about twice as great. " The wine produced," we are told, "is of a light but excellent description, well suited to the requirements of a warm climate, and free from the noxious adulterations so frequently discovered in imported wines. It may be made by any person who has the industry to stick a few vine-cuttings into the ground, and the common intelligence to press the juice from the grapes when they have grown and ripened. A gentleman was hunting stray cattle in the bush on a hot day and became very thirsty, not having been able to fall in with water. Coming, towards evening, across a splitter's hut, he called and asked for a drink. Tlie man regretted that he had no water in the house, but asked him if he would take a draught of his Avine. The wine was brought, and the gentleman said it was the best he had ever tasted in his life. Being a vine-grower himself, he asked the man to explain to him the subtle process by which he had been enabled to pro- duce so splendid an article. He was invited into the S 274 SOUTH AUSTRALIA. hut, and directed to a large cask without a lid, stand- ing behind the door, which the man assured him was the only utensil employed in the manufacture. ' Sir,' he said, ' all we did was to put the grapes into that 'ere cask, and never trouble ourselves about them no more ; and when we puU-.d out the spigot, out comes the wine you have just been drinking of ! ' The tub had been filled with grapes, from which the juice had escaped as they became heated and broken, and the process of fermentation had thrown the scum to the top, forming a hard air-tight crust, which had hermetically sealed the vessel, and prevented the liquor from becoming sour." ^ All residents in South Australia are not so fortu- nate as that splitter, but the colony's good soil and climate make life easy to all who know how to employ it ; and the number of these has been rapidly aug- menting. Having risen, as we have seen, from 22,390 in 1845 to 63,700 in 1850, the population amounted to 96,982 in 1855 ; to 121,960 in 1860 ; and to 148,143 in 1864. It is now nearly 180,000. Ade- laide, the well-built capital, contains about 25,000 inhabitants ; and besides Port Adelaide, which serves as a distant suburb to it, there are at least six other thriving towns — Kapunda, Gawler, Glenelg, Brighton, Norwood, and Kennington — and threescore or more smaller cities, each of which promises to attain importance. " A remarkable development of patient and painstaking industry," says a competent autho- rity, a resident in Melbourne, " is perceptible over the whole colony. Its resources may not bear com- parison with those of some of its still richer neigh- * Forster, pp. 109, 110. ANOTHEE ENGLAND. 275 bours; but, whatever those resources may be, they are certainly in course of development in a very intelligent manner. It is England in miniature, England without its poverty, without its monstrous anomalies of individual extravagances thrown into unnecessary and indecent relief by abounding desti- tution. It is England, with a finer climate" with a virgin soil, with freedom from antiquated abuses, with more Hberal institutions, with a happier people." CHAPTER XXTIL VICTORIA, THE ESTABLISHMENT OF PORT PHILLIP AS AN INDEPENDENT COLONr, tTNDEK THE NAME OF VICTORIA — THE AUSTRALIAN GOLD DIS- COVERIES — THE BALLARAT GOLD-FIELDS — THE CONSEQUENCES OF THE DISCOVERY — THE PROGRESS OF VICTORIA — MELBOURNE IN 1836 — THE BALLARAT OUTBREAK — POLITICAL CHANGES IN VICTORIA. [1851-18G9.] HE Port Phillip Settlement was not five years old wlien its inhabitants began to call for separation from New South "Wales, and for establishment as a distinct colony, with equal privileges to those conferred upon Van Dieman's Land in the south, and South Australia in the west. A partial answer to their demand was made by the political reform of 1842, which gave a larger area and local institutions to the district, and allowed it to send six delegates of its own to the Legislative Council in Sydney. But the people of Melbourne and its neighbourhood found that Sydney was so far off from their own centres of enterprise that their leading men refused to go thither for political work, and they soon began to call more loudly than ever for parliamentary rights which could be exercised by and among themselves. For several years there was a hard fought battle of seces- sion, waged not only in Australia but also in England- In the end the separatists succeeded. The division 876 EARLY GOLD-FINDIXGS IN AUSTRALIA, 277 was authorized by the Australian Colonies Act of 1850; and on the 1st of July 1851 the District of Port Phillip, now named Victoria by express wish of the good Queen herself, became an independent colony. That political change was contemporary with a discovery destined to effect a mighty revolution in the social and commercial condition both of New South Wales and of Victoria. Stray hints of the existence of gold in Australia had been given long before it was put to any use. As early as 1836 a Sydney convict produced a lump of the precious metal, which he declared that he had found in the interior ; but as he failed to point out the precise spot from which he had obtained it, it was assumed that he had stolen a watch and melted it down, and he was punished with a hundred and fifty lashes. A Scotch shepherd also brought several pieces of gold into Sydney, but he kept its source secret, and was accordingly only suspected of some dishonesty. In 1839 Count Strzelecki, an eminent naturalist and discoverer, found some gold in the Australian Alps, and gave reasons for supposing that it abounded in that district. But, he said, " I was warned of the responsibility I should incur if I gLve publicity to the discovery, since, as the Governor argued, by pro- claiming the colonies to be gold regions, the main- tenance of discipline among 45,000 convicts, which New South Wales, Tasmania, and Norfolk Island con- tained, would become almost impossible, and, unless the penal code should be amended at home, transpor- tation would become a premium upon crime, and cease to be a punishment. These reasons of State- policy had great weight with me, and I willingly 278 VICTORIA. deferred to the reasons of the Governor-General, not- withstanding that they were opjwsed to my private interests." Therefore the secret was kept for a dozen years, and this in spite of other discoveries and suppositions. Dr Clarke, a clergyman and geological student in Sydney, picked up some quartz freckled with gold, and was convinced of the extensive distri- bution of the metal in 1841, but did not take the trouble to carry out his speculation ; and in 1844 Sir Eoderick Murchison urged, on purely scientific grounds, the probable existence of gold-fields among the mountains south of Sydney, but no use was made of his hypothesis. At length, in February 1851, Mr E. H. Hargreaves, a practical miner, who had lately come from California, and who was struck by the resemblance of some Australian districts to the great American gold -country, began to make experiments. In May he announced their successful issue, and immediately there was a rush of adventurers to Summerhill, in Bathurst, the site pointed out by him. Unlike Count Strzelecki, to whom the honour of the first discovery is due, he was rewarded, not only by liis share in the first proceeds of the gold-field, but by a grant of £10,000 from the Sydney Government. In that way the El Dorado of New South Wales was opened up, soon to be surpassed by the El Dorado of Victoria. In that colony, too, there liad been occasional findings of golden lumps in previous years ; but no heed was taken of them until the dis- covery of the Bathurst gold-fields. Then some Mel- bourne citizens offered a reward of £200 to any one who would find an available gold-field within the limits of Victoria, and "prospecting" became an A NEW EL DORADO. 279 active pursuit. It succeeded ; and all previous dis- coveries were eclipsed by those made at BaUarat on the 8th of September in the same year, 1851, and soon afterwards in other parts of the colony. Thereupon ensued a turmoil, unparalleled even in the history of California. "Ere the first month expired," says the historian, " nearly 10,000 diggers, of all classes of society, who had rushed promis- cuously to the attractive scene, were upon and around the famous Golden Point, the original nucleus of Ballarat mining. But hardly was this miscel- laneous crowd settled at work ere it commenced shelving off to Mount Alexander, which rumour pro- claimed to be a still richer gold-field. In October and November, ISIount Alexander lived in a blaze of predominant fame ; but it was in turn dimmed by the superior lustre of Bendigo, which made good its pre-eminence during several subsequent years. Ben- digo was, indeed, a wonder of its day, and the extent and activity of the industrial field it presented at this early time have hardly since been exceeded in the colony. In the middle of 1852, the winter time of the antipodes, there were reported, no doubt with some exaggeration, to be 50,000 diggers along the Bendigo Creek. The great and sudden demand for food and other necessaries was met with difficulty, under the double drawback of the state of the roads and the state of the labour market. Prices rose in due proportion, until the price at length secured the supply. Two thousand carts and drays, and other vehicles, were said to be simultaneously toiling along the roads to the different gold-fields. Bendigo was one hundred miles distant from Melbourne, and £1 280 VICTORIA. per ton per mile and upwards were the rates of car- riage of the day. The local dealer must have his profit as well as the carrier ; so that a ton of flour, which cost £25 at Melbourne, had risen to £200 before it reached the hungry consumer at Bendi- go.' -^ The profits made by the gold-diggers them- selves, indeed, were generally far surpassed by the profits of those who catered for their wants. " When I visited England in 1848," we are told, " a steerage passenger and his wife were in the ship, the whole of whose property, when we landed at the London Docks, I believe could have been purchased for £10. This man was a lollipop maker. A few years after the gold discovery I met him in Sydney, when he told me he was going back to England in the next ship. Struck at seeing such an improved edition of my former shipmate, I remarked to him, 'You seem to have been doing well since we last met V ' Oh, yes, sir,' he replied, ' remarkably well. I have been for the last three years near Melbourne.' ' Then,' I said, ' you seem to have had good luck at the diggings.' His answer was, * I did not go near them.' ' What, then, did you do V was my next natural question. 'Well, sir, I kept a public-house for the last three years. I took a good stand on the high road to the Ballarat diggings, and had little trouble in turning in £6000 a year; and I am now going home with £20,000, besides leaving behind me a freehold property of £1500 a year in Melbourne.'"^ There Avas plenty of money-making of that sort ; and if some adventurers put to good use their easily acquired wealth, more squandered it in riotous ways, * Westgarth, " Victoria," pp. 126, 127. * Therry, p. 871. EFFECTS OF THE GOLD-DISCOVEEIES. 281 which helped to increase the confusion and dis- organization of society that tlie gold- discoveries provoked. Men of all tempers and all grades of character rushed to the gold-fields first from the older districts of Victoria and the neighbouring colonies — not a few being escaped convicts and ticket-of-ieave men from Tasmania — and afterwards from Europe, Asia, Africa, and America; and, many of them being reckless and lawless in their dispositions, the influence which they exerted upon the colony was often altogether baneful. An intoxication of success prevailed everywhere, save when, in the case of multitudes who failed in winning the wealth they sought, and in the case of others who be- came suddenly rich only to squander their money and become as suddenly poor, it quickly changed into an intoxication of despair. Ugly scenes were enacted in Melbourne, and all the adjoining dis- tricts up to Ballarat and Bendigo, which made quiet, steady-going colonists wish that this new source of wealth and encouragement to dissipation had never been discovered. Yet, with all its drawbacks, the benefit that resulted to Victoria was truly wonderful. It is not to be measured by the store of glittering metal that was found at Ballarat, and afterwards in other parts as well; but the statistics of this are sufficiently remarkable. In 1851 the gold obtained in Victoria was worth about £600,000, whereas the yield in CaUfornia was equal to £8,500,000. In 1852 Cali- fornia produced £9,300,000; Victoria £10,900,000. The following year was the richest of all. The yield of California was £11,500,000, that of Victoria was 282 VICTOKIA, £12,600,000. After that the Californian fields slightly decreased in value, thovigh they have gene- rally yielded between £8,000,000 and £9,000,000 a year. Victoria had an average of about £11,000,000 a year till 1847 ; but since then its supply has decreased more rapidly. In 1860 it had sunk to the level of California, being about £8,500,000. In 1864 it was £6,200,000, and in 1867 £5,700,000. In 1868, however, it ran to nearly £8,000,000 ; and the pro- duce of this colony during the whole eighteen years between 1851 and 1868 has been about £150,000,000, enough to pay off a fifth of the whole national debt of Great Britain. If this great supply of gold has enriched many thousands of diggers, it has enriched the colony at large still more. Victoria was enjoying a prosperity unrivalled among the dependencies of England in 1851 ; but its subsequent prosperity has been vastly greater. In 1851 its population was 77,845 ; in 1854 it had amounted to 236,776, being more than trebled in the three years. In 1857 it was 410,766 ; in 1861 it was 540,322 ; in 1865 it was more than 600,000 ; and in 1868 it exceeded 650,000. Yet the resources of the country have given ample employment for all the new-comers, and the only need is for a larger number of inhabitants to put them to the best use. Manufactures of all sorts prosper in the towns, and agricultural pursuits offer easy facili- ties for advancement in the country districts, though in them Victoria is still far surpassed by South Aus- tralia; while in the more remote parts squatters carry on their profitable calling, and furnish what is, after gold, the staple export of the colony. Vic- THE PROGRESS OF THE COLONY. 283 toria exported 18,091,207 pounds of -wgoI in 1850, 25,579,886 pounds in 1863, and 42,391,234 poimds in 1866, the value of thu lattfr hoing £3,196,491. Some account of Melbourne, in illustration of the early progress of the colony, has been, already given. " A more striking contrast," says one Avriter, " could not AveU be furnished than the appearance ^Melbourne presented when I was there in the year 1845, and afterwards when I visited it in 1856. In 1845 Bourke Street contained but a few scattered cottages, and sheep were grazed on the thick grass then grow- ing in the street. It was only known to be a street in that year by a sign indicating, ' This is Bourke Street.' In 1856 it was as crowded with fine biiild- ings, and as thronged and alive with the hurrying to and fro of busy people, as Cheapside at the present day. In 1845, from my residence on the Eastern Hill, it was a pleasant walk through green paddocks to the Court House. Ten years afterwards the whole way from that house to the Court House was filled up with streets. Two branches of Sydney banks supplied the district in 1845 with banking accommo- dation that only occupied them with business a few hours each day. In 1856 eight banks could scarcely meet the pecuniary exigencies of tlie community. In the principal street, Collins Street, there was in 1845 but one jeweller, who displayed a scanty supply of second-hand watches and pinchbeck brooches in a shop similar to those in which pawnbrokers display their articles of used-up jewellery in the by-streets off the Strand. In 1856 might be seen in the same street jewellers' shops as numerous and brilliant as those that glitter in Eegent Street. The harbour of 284 VICTORIA. Hobson's Bay, on the morning on which I left it for Sydney, in 1846, cont'^ined two large ships, three Itrigs, and a few sina.x coionial craft. In 1856 the same harbour was filled wi h about two hundred large London and Liverpool ships, and countless other vessels from America, New Zealand, and other parts. In 1845 there was little more than one clergyman of each religious denomination. In 1856 a numerous clergy of the various denominations officiated ; the two principal. Church of England and Eoman Catholic, presided over by bishops of their respective creeds. In short, in size, in wealth, in numbers, in varied social enjoyments, the humble town I had quitted in 1845 had been transformed in 1856 into a splendid city, and presented such a tran- sition from poverty to splendour as no city in the ancient or modern world had heretofore exhibited in a corresponding period."^ In 1856, however, Melbourne had not 90,000 inhabitants ; now they are about 160,000 — nearly as many people as there are in the entire colony of South Australia. Other thriv- ing towns also exist in Victoria, which in rapidity of growth keep pace with Melbourne. Geelong, its earliest rival, has fallen behind-hand; but others, like BaUarat and Sandhurst, which owe their im- portance to the gold-discovery, are now centres of civilization, and markets for much besides gold. Of the general history of the colony little needs to be said. By the constitution which it received with its independence, the management of affairs, under the governor, was vested in a Legislative Council of tliirty members, ten being Crown nominees, and the 1 Therry, pp. 355-357, THE BALLARAT OUTBREAK. 285 other twenty elected by all inhabitants who paid a £10 annual rental. Mr Latrob :^, wlio had been made superintendent in 1839, continued in office a3 gover- nor till 1854; but his quiet rule hardly gave satisfac- tion to the colonists. Still less were tliey satisfied with his successor, Sir Charles Hotharn, who shared the blame thrown upon his predecessor for the Ballarat outbreak in the November of that year. " The gold-fields by this time," says the historian, " comprised by far the most important interest in the colony, more than half of the population being con- nected with them. A gTOwl of complaint from this mis- cellaneous mass of people had from the first scarcely ever ceased to be emitted; and this ominous noise had been gradually increasing in loudness and sharpness under an accumulating variety of evils. Some of these evils, so far at least as the authorities were concerned, were irremediable, such as the discomfort of digging life, and the precariousnesss of its results; both of these adverse features having been aggravated by the cir- cumstance of a scanty rainfall in the year 1854, when the yield of gold was in consequence unusually smaU. Other evils seemed to admit of remedy, and the Colonial Government received plentifid blame at the hands of the diggings' community in regard to them. There was indeed much substantial ground for these complaints. A vast irregular society had been sud- denly called up throughout the colony, and the Government, somewhat perplexed how to deal with it, had been fain to let the difficulty solve itself by doing nothing; that is to say, although they had appointed paid officers and paid magistrates, who went through a round of duties — and with especial 286 VICTOKIA. strictness, that of collecting the gold -mining licence fee of thirty shillings monthly, as well as the other Government, dues — they had never taken any steps to make the gold-fields' population, socially and politi- cally, a part of the colony. There was no arrange- ment for a mining franchise and a gold-fields' repre- sentation, and no social status, even by the simple and usual expedient of graduating the people to the Government by enrolling the more respectable of the great mining community as local justices of the peace. This state of things had lasted three years, and it was greatly aggravated by the vain efforts of the colonists to induce the hesitating Government to sell adequate quantities of the public lands. Many a digger longed for a few adjacent acres, on which he might rear a home and plant a garden or potato-field of his own ; and for such a rare luxury he would willingly have exchanged the tin pannikin or pickle-bottle full of gold that lay concealed in a corner of his tent, and represented the last six months of his mining toils. Discontent centred itself in the question of the monthly licence fee, as this was a subject on which a demonstration could be most effectually made. The Government had tried some palliatives in the licence difficulty; and, by allowing a discount on prepayments for longer terms than a month, had hoped to super- sede many of the collector's visits, and so diminish the occasions for hostile manifestations. These efforts had not been successful. The Ballarat riot took its more immediate rise from one of the " raids " upon the diggers for the obnoxious licence money. Upon the first serious threatenings of disturbance, however, a party of military were sent up from Melbourne, ITS POLITICAL CHANGES. 287 who, on arrival, were confronted by a stockade erected by the rioters on the famous Bakery Hill. At early dawn of the 3d of December, this place was stormed and taken, not without loss of life on both sides; and thus this very exceptional and unhappy colonial occurrence came to an end."^ The cause of offence also soon came to an end. In 1855 the political condition of the gold-diggers was entirely reconstituted. The monthly licence fee was abolished, and, in lieu, a small export duty on gold was appointed; while the diggers were enabled, on payment of £1 a year, to secure for themselves both mining privileges and the franchise. The gold-fields were divided into districts, each under the charge of a. warder, who saw that the local courts did their duty, and was aided by a staff of unpaid justices. These arrangements gave satisfaction to the mining community, and helped to convert a discontented and lawless race of men into good citizens and friends of order. These reforms were part of a change which occun'ed in the management of the whole colony. The people, both of Victoria and of the neighbour- ing settlements, were not satisfied with the political ari-angements that had been made for them in 1851. They asked for public representative rights, and greater power of self-government; in fact, for a complete democratic system. " The Ballot, No Pro- perty Qualification, Equal Electoral Districts, and Manhood Suffrage," were the four "points of the charter" claimed by the Australian radicals, and they were advocated most vehemently in Victoria. The 1 Westgarth, pp. 148-150. 288 VICTORIA. British Government wisely allowed the colonists to have their own way, A new constitution, transfer- ring complete functions of self-government to two legislative chambers, both of them elected wholly by the colonists themselves, under a governor who became for all practical purposes only their chair- man, was proclaimed on the 23d of November, 1855 ; and since then the details of political power, hardly fought over by the colonists themselves, have been gradually tending in the direction of iincurbed re- publicanism. The result has in the main been satis- factory to all who consider that government is only a machine for forwarding the best interests of all classes of the governed, and that any machine which thus works most efficiently is the one most to be commended. The colony of Victoria affords the interesting spectacle of a democracy, more complete even than that of the United States, yet notably loyal to the sovereign whose name it bears. CHAPTER XXIV. NEW SOUTH WALES AND QUEENSLAND. THE LATER PROnRESS OF NEW SOUTH WALES — ITS COLD-FIELPS AND THEIU FRUIT — SQUATTER-EXTENSIONS — THE RISE OF THE MORETON BAY DISTIUCT, AND THE OPENING UP OF CENTRAL AUSTRALIA— THE FERTILITY OF THIS REGION — ESTABLISHMENT OF THE COLONY OF QUEENSLAND — ITS RAPID GROWTH — THE PRESENT CONDITION OF NEW SOUTH WALES — ITS COAL-FIELDS. [1851-18C9.] HE limits of the colony of New South Wales, originally comprismg about l,50u,000 square miles, and thus neaily half aa large as Europe, were sucessfully cur- tailed by the partition of the three colonies of Van Dieman's Land, South Australia, and Victoria, which, though all three constituted less than a third of the entire area — Van Dieman's Land being about a sixtieth, South Australia about a quarter, and Victoria about a sixteenth — were in value very much more than a third. Of the 1,000,000 or more square miles left to New South Wales in 1851, only a very small section was under cultivation or pnrcelled out in townships; and if the squatters tended their sheep in far-off regions, and over vast extents of gi'ound, the chief portion of the territory was put to no use at all. Of the population of 189,957, about a third was in Sydney and its suburbs, about a sixth in other towns, and less than half spread over the neighbouring country districts. 239 T 290 NEW SOUTH WALES AND QUEENSLAND. The mother-colony, however, was not too old to compete, and that successfully, with her offspring. She had by this time, indeed, fairly shaken off i;ie pernicious influences of convict life that had marred her early career, and was now aLle co vie even with Victoria as a nation of vigorous and independent men, worthy to enjoy the powers of complete self- government wisely conferred upon them by Great Britain. These self-governing powers of New South Wales abnost kept pace with those of Victoria. The old constitution was here, as in the south, abolished in 1855, and the colonists were left to choose their ovvl\ legislative machinery, and alter it to their taste. Except that the Upper House of Parliament, instead of being elected by the people as in Victoria, continues to be composed of Crown nominees, the machinery is now almost as democratic as in the younger colony. The seventy-two members of the Lower House are elected by universal suffrage, aided by the baUot. The later growth of the colony is mainly due to the discovery of gold in the district of Bathurst, which has already been referred to, although, as the Bathurst mines proved far less rich than those in the neighbourhood of Ballarat, New South Wales, while it had quite as much temporary derangement as Victoria, has profited far lesd. The entire yield of the mines near the Australian Alps between 1851 and 1868 was only worth about £30,000,000, against the £150,000,000^ drawn from the region of the Australian Pyrennees. " The immediate effect of the discovery in Sydney and throughout the colony," says a resident, " was a GOLD-FEVEU IN NEW SOUTH WALES. 291 state of society in which there was the minimum of comfort combined with the maximum of expense." ^ " There was," says another, " a heterogeneous scramble for the coveted ore througliout the length and breadth of the land. Artizans of every description threw up their employments, leaving their masters and their wives and families to take care of themselves. Nor did the mania confine itself to the labouring classes, for these were soon followed by responsible trades- men, farmers, captains of vessels, and not a few of the superior classes ; some unable to withstand the mania and the force of the stream, or because they were really disposed to venture time and money on the chance, and others because they were, as employers of labour, left in the lurch) and had no alternative." ^ Some went to Bathurst ; more to Ballarat, or JMount Alexander, or Bendigo. " Sydney looked like a deserted village. There the judicious purchaser stepped in, and bought whole streets of un- occupi 'd houses for hundreds, which, in twelve months afterward i, he sold for more than as many thousands. In 1854 prices rose to quite a fever height, and in that year fabulous riches were realized. Shopkeepers, no longer selling their goods at a fair value, found the best customers in those to whom they charged the most exorbitant prices. When the drapers were dealing with the diggers, who knew nothing of the real value of the silks, satins, and laces with which they supplied the fair companions whom they treated, the custom was, on an article being shown to them, not to beat down the price, but to ask, ' Have you nothing dearer than that ? ' On such a hint, of » Thorry, p. 369. » Westgarth, " Australia," pp. 169,170. 292 NEW SOUTH WALES AND QUEENSLAND. course, the seller acted, and, on exhibiting a showy article of inferior value, but on which was put a higher price, the article sold immediately."^ One benefit accruing from this disoT-ganized state of society was that the wealth acquired by the great majority of the diggers, men unfit to put it to good uses, quickly passed, though often through demoraliz- ing channels — the chief of all being gin-palaces — into better hands. Much of it soon left the colony ; but more remained, to be employed in older and more productive ways. AU trades in New South Wales were greatly stimulated by the gold dis- coveries, and, in the end, none more than the oldest and best — that of wool-producing. Squatters became more numerous, and their operations more extensive. After driving their sheep far south and far west, up to the boundaries of Victoria and South Australia, they advanced in northerly directions, and thus helped in the formation of another, and at present the youngest, of the Australian colonies. The rich lands of the new colony, now bearing the name of Queensland, had long been vaguely known and slightly valued. Moreton Lay, in which the present capital of Brisbane is built, had been dis- covered by Captain Cook in 1770 ; and the Eiver Brisbane, which runs into it from Darling Downs, had been explored in 1823 by Oxley, sent out by the New South Wales Government to choose a site for a new convict settlement. He chose Brisbane, which was so used until 1842, and many substantial build- ings were there erected by the convicts. But the obstacles thrown in the way of free colonization for * Therry, pp. 370,371. QUEENSLAND AND ITS WEALTH. 293 some time prevented their being advantageously employed, and until about twenty years ago the great resources of the district were almost entirely neglected. At length attention began to be called to them. " The whole country bounded by Moreton Bay," it was said in 1840, "is well adapted for grazing and agricultural farming. The indigenous timber is of great value. The mulberry tree grows very luxuriantly. The climate and soil appear well suited to the cultivation of the sugar-cane, cotton, arrowroot, tobacco, indigo, and other tropical products. They are also admirably adapted for the production of every species of European grain, as well as those peculiar to warmer climates ; for, as vegetation goes on without interruption all the year round, the farmer has only to select, for the growth of any description of grain, tlie peculiar season that will ensure the exact temperature required to bring it to maturity. The barley harvest, that being the hardiest grain, comes immediately after the colonial winter, the wheat harvest at the commencement of summer, and the maize harvest so late as to give that intertropical grain the fuU benefit of the heat of summer. The English potato, and the Indian or sweet potato, are both cultivated successfully. Coal is found in the neighbourhood of the Brisbane, and the fisheries of the extensive bay and coast may be made very pro- fitable."^ If this coast region, and others adjoining it both north and south, were found to be excellently adapted for agricultural pursuits, the vast sweep of country stretching inland, embracing high mountains, fertile valleys, and rich table-lands, ' as no less fitted » Martin, vol. ii. pp. 483, 484. 294 NEW SOUTH wales and Queensland. to the needs of the squatter, and, after he had helped to make the best portions too vahiable for his own more desultory use, for farming cultivation. Much of the great Queensland district forms an Australia Felix only second to the Australia Felix in the south. The great explorer of this region was the unfortunate Dr Leichhardt. Sir Thomas Mitchell also visited it in 1845 and 1846, passing northwards from Sydney, nnd then in a north- western direction towards the Gulf of Carpentaria, visiting the Darling Downs and other parts already known, though still unused, and ending by discover- ing a beautiful plain, watered by many streams, besides the larger one to which he gave the name of Victoria. " The son," he said, " consists of rich clay, and the hollows gave birth to water-courses, in most of which water was abundant. I found, at length, that I might travel in any direction, and find water at hand, without having to seek the river, except when I wished to ascer- tain its general course and observe its character. The grass consists of several new sorts, one of which springs green from the old stem. The plains were verdant. Indeed, the luxuriant pasturage surpassed in quality, as it did in extent, anything of the kind I had ever seen. New birds and new plants marked this out as an essentially different region from any I had pre- viously explored. That the river is the most import- ant of Australia, increasing as it does by successive tributaries, and not a mere product of distant ranges, admits of no dispute; and the downs and plains of Central Australia, through which it flows, seem suffi- cient to supply the whole world with animal food."^ * Martin, vol. ii. p. 394. THE GROWTH OF QUEENSLAND. 295 Reports like that induced adventurous squatters gradually to encroach upon the hitherto neglected solitudes to the far north-west of Sydney, and as other adventurers began to settle in considerable numbers in the neighbourhood of Morton Bay, the vast territory was in time fitted to become a colony distinct from New South Wales. The change was made in December 1859, when the mother-colony, already deprived of a third of her territory, was mulcted of two-thirds of the tenitory remaining to her, and the colony of Queensland was parted off with an area 678,600 square miles, com- prising all the country north of 28° 30' south lati- tude, and east of 141° east longitude. In 1851 it had about 8500 inhabitants, chietiy resident in Bris- bane and its neighbourhood. In 1856 the popula- tion was double the former number; and in 1859, when the separation took place, it amounted to 25,146 — Brisbane, the capital, having 7000 inha- bitants, and Ipswich, a little island on a tributary of the Brisbane Eiver, about 4500. Since then the colony, which has a political con- stitution very similar to that of New South Wales, has grown rapidly. In 1861 it had a population of 34,885, and an export trade of £709,599, composed almost entirely of the wool, taUow, and skins obtained from about 4,000,000 sheep and 560,000 cattle. In 1863 the population had risen to 61,640, the stock of sheep and cattle had been increased by half, and the trade had been proportionately augmented. In that year there were two memorable additions to the list of colonial produce. Queensland began to export gold and cotton. Its gold mines, those at any rate 296 NEW SOUTH WALES AND QUEENSLAND. which have as yet been discovered, are less im- portant than those of the south, though the yield, which in 1863 was only worth £144,802, had risen to £593,516 in 1868. Its growth of cotton is still inconsiderable ; but all that is produced equals the best that can be obtained from any other part of the world, and nothing but the sparseness of its popula- tion, and the ease of money-making in other ways, hinders the development of this branch of commerce so important to Great Britain. " Since the establishment of Queensland in Decem- ber 1859," said its governor. Sir George Bowen, at the close of 1865, "our European population has increased from 25,000 to nearly 90,000 ; that is, it has been augmented nearly fourfold ; while our revenue and our trade, including imports and exports, liave been more than trebled. The other chief elements of material prosperity have advanced in almost equal proportions. Cotton, sugar, and tobacco have been added to our lists of staple products. A line of ne^v ports has been opened along our eastern seaboard from Keppel Bay to Cape York, a distance of a thousand miles ; while pastoral occupation has spread over an additional area at least four times larger than the area of the United Kingdom. In 1859 our settlers had hardly advanced beyond the Darling Downs to the west, or beyond Eockhampton to the north. Now, in 1865, there are stations seven hundred miles to the west of Brisbane, and eight hundred miles to the north of Eockhampton."^ And the progress has certainly not been less rapid during the last three years. > " Eeports of Colonial Governors (1865)," part ii. p. 23. PROGRESS OF NEW SOUTH WALES. 297 New South Wales has also continued to progress rapidly in recent years, although suffering much from the drain of emigrants, generally the most enterpris- ing, to the yet more energetic colonies of Queensland on the north and Victoria on the south. Other settlers, however, have come to fill their place and more. Its population had increased from 189,9")! in 1851 to 266,189 in 1856, and— in spite of the great reduction of its area by the formation of Queensland, leaving it only 323,437 square miles — to 358,278 in 1861, and to 431,412 in 1866; having nearly doubled in each period of five years. The growth of trade, though not proportionately rapid, has also been great. The loss of so many of its best squatting districts caused, in 1850 and the few following years, a con- siderable falling off in the supply of wool and tallow, and in 1866 the exports of these articles were hardly so great as they had been in 1856, when the wool was worth about £1,650,000, and the tallow about £125,000 ; but the increased value of the gold mines, the yield of which in 1866 was worth £2,924,891, had compensated for this. Yet more important, though in itself less lucrative, has been the growth of the colony's coal-mining, which more than quadrupled in the ten years. Of this mineral, the one notable scarcity in Australia, New South Wales has almost the monopoly. There were raised in 1866 774,238 tons, valued at £324,049, of which about half was sold to the neighbouring colonies. "Such," says a recent traveller, " is the present rapidity of the growth and rise to power of Queensland, such the apparent poverty of New South Wales, that were the question merely one between the Sydney wheat- 298 NEW SOUTH wales and Queensland, growers and the cotton-planters of Brisbane and Eockhampton, the rich tropical settlers would be as certain of the foremost position in any future con- federation as they were in America when the struggle lay only between the Carolinas and New England. As it is, just as America was first saved by the coal of Pennsylvania and Ohio, Australia will be saved by the coal of New South Wales. Queensland possesses some small stores of coal, but the vast preponderance of acreage of the great power of the future lies in New South Wales. On my return from a short voyage to the north, I visited the coal-field of New South Wales, at Newcastle, on the Hunter. The beds are of vast extent. They lie upon the banks of a navi- gable river, and so near to the surface, that the best qualities are raised, in a country of dear labour, at 8s. or 9s. a ton, and delivered on board ship for 12s. For manufacturing purposes the coal is perfect ; for steam use it is, though somewhat 'dirty,' a serviceable fuel; and copper and iron are found in close proximity to the beds. The Newcastle and Port Jackson fields open a brilliant future to Sydney in these times, when coal is king in a far higher degree than was ever cotton. To her black beds the colony will owe not only manufactures, bringing wealth and population, but that leisure which is begotten of riches — leisure that brings culture, and love of harmony and truth. "^ 1 DOke, "Greater Britain." pp. 300, 301. CHAPTEE XXV. WEST AUSTKALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. ORIGIN OF THE SWAN KTVER SETTLEMENT, OK WESTERN AUSTRALIA — EARLY MISFOUTrXE.S OF THE COLONY — ITS PRESENT CONDI- TION — EXPLORATIONS IN THE INTERIOR OF THE AUSTRALIAN CONTINENT — THE FIRST DISCOVERERS — STURT, MURRAY, EYRE, LEICHHARDT — STURT AGAIN — STUART — BUUKE AND WILLS — THE CIIAUACTER OF THE INTERIOR. [1827-1865.] LDEE as an independent colony than South Australia, Victoria, or Queensland, but less prosperous than any of them, is the settlement of Western Australia, origi- nally intended to consist of all the great island- continent which was not comprised in New South Wales. Swan Eiver, round whose shores still clusters most of the colony's feeble life, was first %dsited in 1697 by Vlaming, a Dutch navigator, who gave it its name in consequence of the number of black swans that he there found ; but little was thought of the district till 1827, when Captain Stirling, of the Success, called attention to it, and urged the importance of its immediate occupation so as to prevent its being converted, as was thought likely, into a French settlement. Early in 1829 Captain Ereemantle was sent in the Challenger to take formal possession of the country on behalf of the English Crown; and 209 300 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. before the close of tlie year tweii^-;^ -five ships had arrived at Swan Piiver from England, bearing 850 emigrants, 57 horses, 106 pigs, 204 cows, and 1096 sheep. In 1830 tliere arrived 1125 other settlers, and more horses, pigs, cows, and sheep, and there were further, tliough not very considerable, importa- tions of men and animals in the following years. But the first colonists found themselves lodged on a barren coast, unfit for the agricultural and pastoral enterprise for which, had other things been favour- able, they had no great aptitude, and they were seriously harassed by the multitudes of hostUe savages, who resented this intrusion on their barbaric privileges. Great misery was the result, and it was not lessened by the civil, naval, and military officers in charge of the experiment, who divided among themselves about 300,000 acres of the best land that was to be obtained, shifting their dominions as often as one district after another was found or thought to be preferable. The emigrants had come out under promise of also receiving grants of land ; but only the most useless parts were left for them. The result was deplorable. " The entire material of a settlement," they said, in an indignant protest for- warded to the British Government in 1831, "the official staff, settlers, property, and live stock, were hurried out to an unknown wilderness before one acre was surveyed, before one building had been erected, before even a guess had been formed as to the proper scene of their labours, before the slightest knowledge had been obtained of the soil, rli^'jate, products, or inhabitants. Nay, further, it was ab- solutely made a condition of the grants of land that AN ILL-PLANNED COLONY. 301 the emigrant should bring his family, dependants, and property into the colony while in tliis state. The ghastly spectacle of the town-site of Clarence — its sole edifices crowded, buried, and neglected tombs — its only inhabitants corpses, the victims of disease, starvation, and despair — the sea-beach strewed with wrecks — the hills and borders of the rivers studded with deserted and half-finished buildings — bear wit- ness to these consequences, and speak of brave men, delicate females, and helpless children perishing by hundreds on a desert coast from want of food, of shelter, and even of water, and surrounded by armed hordes of angry savages. It were impossible to esti- mate the vast amount of property of every sort buried for safety in the sands of the shore, and never again recovered, or the vast multitude of most valuable and high-bred stock of all descriptions, whose skele- tons whitened the beach or filled the morasses they had been forced to enter in the desperate search for even fresh water." ^ The blame attachincr to those who led them into this condition was, of course, shared by the emigrants who suffered themselves to be so led ; but they paid the full penalty for their folly. " Some," we are told, " demanded to be led to their lands ; others gave way to despair ; sen'ants attacked the spirit-casks ; masters followed their example. The farmers were told they must wait — wait till lands were discovered, and then wait until they were surveyed. A quarter of a million sterling of property was destroyed ; the means of the immi- grants dissipated ; their live-stock perished ; many died ; and numbers, as soon as practicable, fled from *'" Parliamentary Emigration Papers" for 18-i9, 50. 302 WEST AUbTKALLV AND WASTE AUSTKALIA. this scene of ruin, carrying with them the wreck of their fortunes."^ That was the dismal beGjinning of the Swan Eiver Settlement, afterwards known as Western Australia, intended to turn into an English colony the 978,000 square miles of land assigned as its limits, being the whole of Australia west of tlie 139th degree of east longitude. Slowly and painfully, however, those who survived the first hardships, and the many new-comers who left England in ignorance of the lot awaiting them, or who boldly hoped that, amid the failures of others, they miglit find ways of suc- ceeding, brought some sort of order and progress into the colony. The town of Perth was built on a well- chosen site by the side of the Swan Eiver, and Free- mantle was appointed as its port, at the entrance of the river into the Indian Ocean. The village of Albany, destined to become a tovrn, was planted by St George's Sound, on the southern coast, and other settlements were formed along the shore and here and there inland. The country was gradually found to be less inhospitable than at first it seemed, and the colonists who were able to endure the difficulties of their strange life slowly secured for themselves a measure of prosperity by sheep-farming and agricul- ture. In 1834 the colony contained about 1600 English inhabitants and bome 3500 sheep, and there were 918 acres of land under cultivation. In 1842 there were 3476 colonists and 60,380 sheep, yielding 84,640 pounds of wool, and the cultivated land com- prised 3364: acres. In 1848 the people numbered 4622 and the sheep 141,123; the wool exported 1 Martin, vol. ii. p. 713. PROGRESS OP WESTERN AUSTRALIA. 303 amounted to 301,905 pounds, and 157,855 acres of land were under tillage. In 1849, finding that very few new emigrants arrived, and that the progress of the colony was crippled by scarcity of labour, the West Australians petitioned that their numbers might be augmented by convicts ; and the petition was readily acceded to, as the Tasmanians had refused, with a vehemence that could not be disregarded, to receive any more, and as New South "Wales had long before been freed from them. By this means almost exclusively the population of West Australia has been increased during the last twenty years ; but even this question- able advantage has been removed, at the earnest entreaty of the Victorians and other colonists of Australia, who resent the coming among them of runaway or liberated criminals from the west. Their distant neighbours take a different view. " The con- victs available for public works," said the Governor of Western Australia in 1866, " have been distributed throughout the colony, in repairing and making roads and bridges, and ge^^erally on works for the benefit of the - whole community. A natural feeling of apprehension exists that the approaching cessation of transportation will throw a heavy burden on the colonists in respect of the keeping in order of the public highways."^ In 1866 there were about 10,000 convicts or eman- cipists in the colony, out of an English population of 21,065. Among that number there were, in a single year, about 3500 convictions for ofHences. Dismal accounts are given by travellers of the contamination 1 " Colonial Grovernors' Reports," 1867, part ii. p. 70. 304 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. produced among nearly all classes by the presence of so many criminals. " The contrast between the scenery and the people of West Australia," says one, " is great indeed. The aboriginal inhabitants of Albany were represented by a tribe of filthy natives — tall, half-starved, their heads bedaubed with red ochre, and their faces smeared with yellow clay ; the colonists by a gang of fiend-faced convicts, working in chains upon the esplanade, and a group of scowl- ing expirees hunting a monkey with bull-dogs on the pier ; while the native women, half clothed in tattered kangaroo-skins, came slouching past with an aspect of defiant wretchedness. On the road between Albany and Hamilton, I saw a man at work in ponderous irons. The sun was striking down upon him in a way that none can fancy who have no experience of Western Australia or Bengal, and his labour was of the heaviest ; now he had to prise up huge rocks with a crowbar, now to handle pick and shovel, now to use the rammer, under the eye of an armed warder who idled in the shade by the roadside. This was an ' escape man,' thus treated with a view to cause him to cease his continual endeavours to get away from Albany. Work is never done in West Australia unless under the compulsion of the lash, for a similar degradation of labour is produced by the use of con- victs as by that of slaves. The convicts and their keepers form two-thirds of the whole population, and the district is a great English prison, not a colony, and exports but a little sandal- wood, and a little cotton."^ Some enterprise is shown by the colonists, how- 1 Dilke, pp. 176, 177. INLAND EXPLORATIONS. 305 ever, not only in agricultural production and in sheep-farming, but also in working the copper mines, in which some parts are rich. Besides copper, iron, lead, zinc, and coal exist in more or less abundance, though they have hardly yet been used, and are not likely to be without more extensive colonization than the uninviting district has hitherto induced. Western Australia, still a Crown colony, without any form of popular government, affords a strange contrast to the free and vigorous nations that are growing up in the east. Its few inhabitants are spread over only a very small portion of the vast area, of which there are stiU more than forty square miles for each resident. The almost boundless regions of the interior have as yet been hardly visited by white men. In the exploration of that interior, however, both in the parts belonging to West Australia, and the parts belonging to Queensland and South Australia, much has been done. To some of the exploring expeditions, slight reference has already been made. Here, how- ever, it win be well to describe briefly aU the most important of them. They constitute a story of heroic exploits in overland travel, only surpassed, in modem times, by the successive voyages undertaken in Arctic seas by the precursors of Sir John Franklin, and those who sought to rescue him, or at any rate to discover his fate. The work was begun at Sydney, when it was the nucleus of all the later colonization and civilization of Australia. The coast and narrow strip of land about Sydney alone were known before 1813, when Blaxland, Lawson, and Wentworth crossed the Blue Mountains, and when Evans visited Bathurst and u 306 WEST AUSTRALIA AXD WASTE AUSTRALIA. discovered the river Laclilan, But those modest achievements were quickly followed by others of greater magnitude, some of the most heroic being those which have been of least value in opening up new fields for English settlement. In 1817 and 1818 Oxley traced the Lachlan and the Macquarie down a great part of their course. In 1824 Hovell and Hume tracked the road from Sydney to Port Phillip, now Victoria. In 1827 Allan Cunningham, the poet, discovered the Darling Downs ; and in later years, as has been already noticed, all the eastern parts of Australia, north and south of Sydney, now included in Victoria end Queensland, were visited. More adventurous than any of his predecessors was Captain Charles Sturt, who start '<^ on tu ^ first of three famous expeditions in 1828. Several rivers, large and small, had been found by inland travellers ; but the coast explorers had not observed their outlets into the sea. Hence arose the theory that there was a great lake in the interior into which the rivers emptied themselves. Sturt was its chief supporter, and in the hope of proving it all his journeys were undertaken. In 1828 he discovered the Darling, and followed it almost to the point of its junction with the Murray. In 1830 he tracked the Murray to its mouth in Encounter Bay, though, wedded to the iniand-lake theory, he refused to believe that that was its only or chief outlet. On this occasion, in an open whale-boat, with a crew of five, he rowed a thousand miles from his starting-point on the Mur- rumbidgee, a branch of the Murray, more than once having to fight his way through tribes of hostile STUKT'S expeditions along the MURRAY, 307 natives, and during tlie thousand miles' return jour- ney, he and his followers had little but flour for food. " Se'"'enty-seven days after starting," we are told, "thf_; reached the place were they had built their boat, having in the interim rowed at least two thou- sand miles. Here a terrible disappointment awaited them. They had expected all along that provisions would have been sent from Sydney to this point. The hope of this had buoyed them up amid all their fatigues. But the depot was just as they had left it, and no one was there. The next rendezvous was two hundred miles away, and Sturt remembered with bitterness that he had told his companions that they need not come farther down unless some extraordinary delay took place. It was useless therefore to expect them, so the boat proceeded onward. For seventeen days longer they pulled against the stream. The daily journeys became graduaEy shorter and shorter. No murmur, however, escaped the crew, as they sat in the boat, pale and emaciated, and pulled against the current. At night, in their tents, before sleeping, when Sturt's presence no longer controlled them, their sufferings would find an utterance. ' I fre- quently,' says Sturt, ' heard them complain of great pain and severe exhaustion. " I must tell th.e cap- tain," some of them would say, " that I can pull no more.'" To-morrow came, and they pulled on. At last, one of them became deranged, and the others fairly gave up. This was still ninety miles from the depot, but they absolutely could not take the boat any farther. Eeluctantly they drew it on shore, and two of the strongest men were sent in advance, and the rest waited. For six days there was no sign of their 308 WEST AUSTKALIA AND WASTE AUSTKALIA. return. The last day's provisions had been served out, and then they thought of nothing but saving their lives. The specimens were buried in cases made of the whale-boat, and they resolved next day to follow in the track of their comrades. That next day, however, brought them the long-expected relief. This was the last of their trials, and exactly six months after leaving they were all safe back again in Sydney."^ In such narratives of hazardous achievements and hair-breadth escapes the history of Australian dis- covery abounds. Not without danger were the expeditions of Sir Thomas Mitchell in 1831, 1835, and 1836, when, following up the discoveries of Sturt, he explored the beautiful country, now included in Victoria, to which he gave the name of Australia Felix. But there was greater danger in some of the minor enterprises of travellers in more distant parts of the island, as in the journeys under- taken by Lieutenants Grey — who, as Sir George Grey, was afterwards Governor of South Australia, of New Zealand, and of Cape Colony — and Lushington in Western Australia, and especially its north-western parts, between 1837 and 1840, by which were opened up some splendid regions, of which Little use has yet been made. Another bold Australian explorer, since famous for his connection, as governor of Jamaica, with the so-called insuiTection of 1865, was Sir Edward, then Mr Eyre. Having made some researches around the new settlement at Adelaide in 1839, he stt out next ' Woods, "History of Discovery and Exploration in Australia,* Tol. i. pp. 362, 363, eyre's journey to ST George's sound. 309 year on a more daring expedition. Attended by- only five men and two boys, and travelling due north in search of the supposed inland sea, he went much farther than any previous traveller had done, and examined the neighbourhood of Lake Torrens. Much farther into the unknown north he dared not go. After being twice for many days without water, and seeing around him nothing but monotonous dangers, before him no passage to anything but death, he abandoned the attempt to push on to the northern shore of the island, and retraced his steps. But then, not disheartened, he turned round and traversed the dreary southern coast-land, past the Australian Bight, from Port Lincoln to St George's Sound, with one white and three black companions. Here peril succeeded peril, and horror was heaped on horror. On the 25th of March 1841, after three months' journey, he had only reached the head of the Bight. He was still six hundred and fifty miles from St George's Sound, and he had only three weeks' provisions in store. " The overseer," says the historian, "begged Mr Eyre to return, but he would not. Yet he was suffering perhaps more than the others ; he was very ill from living upon some unwholesome fish they had caught, and his chances of life seemed very small if he persisted in his undertaking. But go on he would. He con- sented to kill a horse for food; it was one which was so iU that his life could not be saved in any case, and the consequence of such unwholesome diet was that they were all ill again. Bad as it was, the native boys thought they had not had enough of it, so during the night they stole a large quantity. Mr 310 WEST AUSTKALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. Eyre detected the act of dishonesty, and to punish the two eldest of them, deducted a third portion of their usual share of rations. They resented this by leaving the party, and endeavouring to make their way by themselves ; but as they had been very much disaffected ever since the rations were reduced, Eyre was not surprised at their conduct. The last sheep was now killed, as a preparation for another journey. The overseer then went to examine the countiy in advance. The news brought back was not encouraging; the road lay along even more thick and scrubby land than before. It seemed threaten- ing rain, so the start was delayed. Anxiously they watched each darkening cloud, praying earnestly for some few drops of water ; but the clouds cleared off", and the night was clear and cold. Just as they were turning in for the evening the native boys came back ; they could not exist upon their own resources, and were sadly famished before they submitted to the humiliation of returning. Eyre took them back, believing them to be sincere, and little suspected the treachery they meditated. Again, on the 26th and 27th, it seemed wild and stormy, and threatening rain, but none fell. On the latter date they started, again leaving behind them everything except the pro- visions, their arms, ammunition, and clothes. They only advanced fifteen miles the first day. The next stage was, however, eighteen, through a thick scrub, and along the top of the limestone cliffs which had re- appeared, but were now not more than three hundred feet high. On the 29th they made nineteen miles ; but the day was so windy that they could scarcely stagger along the tops of the cliffs. In the evening eyre's journey to ST George's sound. 311 the horses were all hobbled, and turned out to feed, and the stores were piled under an oilskin, while every one was obliged to make break-winds of boughs to protect thean during the night. Mr Eyre on this eventful evening took the first watch, from six to eleven. The night was bitterly cold, and the wind was blowing hard from the south-west. The horses fed well, but rambled a good deal. At half- past ten Mr Eyre went to fetch them back. He found them at a short distance, and was picking his way, in the dark, among the bushes, when he was suddenly startled by a gunshot. It was from the camp, and of course he hurried there im- mediately. About one hundred yards from it he met Wylie, the King George's Sound native, run- ning, and crying out, ' Oh, massa ! oh, niassa ! come, look here!' He reached the camp, and there before him lay his overseer in the agonies of death, with a wound in his chest, from which the blood was flowing rapidly. A glance around ex- plained the whole scene. Tlie two younger natives were gone, whilst the scattered fragments of the baggage which had been piled under the oilskin told the reason why. The overseer was beyond human aid, for he expired immediately after Eyre's arrival. It was a horrible scene, and the feelings of the survivor were shocked as well by the crushing weight of the disaster as by its suddenness. Eyre describes it with a reality that none but. a witness coidd do justice to. He says : ' The horrors of my situation glanced upon me. I was alone in the desert. The frightful, appalling truth glared upon me in such startling reality as almost to paralyze 312 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. my mind. At the dead hour of night, with the fierce wind raging around me, in one of the most inhospitable wastes of Australia, I was left alone with one native boy. I could not rely upon his fidelity, for he was perhaps in league with the other two, who might be waiting to kill me. Three days had passed since we had found water, and it was very doubtful when we should find more. Six hundred miles of country had to be traversed before I could hope to obtain the slightest help or assistance, whilst I knew that not a drop of water nor an ounce of flour had been left by the murderers.' The guns were gone, and only a rifle and a pair of pistols left. The former was use- less, as a ball was jammed in the barrel; and the latter had no cartridges to fit them. Obtaining possession of all the remaining arms, useless as they were, he went with the native to look for the horses. After a long search he found them, and when he brought them back to the camp he sat down to watch. He passed a bitter night. Every moment he tells us seemed to him an age, and he thought the morning would never come. The night was frosty. He had nothing on but a shirt and trousers, and to mental anguish was now added intense bodily pain. He teUs us that suffering and distress nearly overwhelmed him, and life seemed scarcely worth the effort to pro- long it."^ But hope came in the morning. A small quantity of food was found, and one of the horses served for more, till, after slow travelling and frequent resting, Mr Eyre and his single companion reached a district in which kangaroos and fish were to be * Woods, vol. ii. pp. 19-21. LEICHHAKDT AND STUllT. 313 procured. Two months of further travel brought them to their destination, where succour awaited them ; and they were taken back to Adelaide, there to learn that they had long before been given up as dead. That journey, one of the least profitable in the long list of Australian travels, was one of the most perilous. Dr Leichhardt's important expedition of 1844 and 1845, in a different quarter, was more useful and less dangerous. Starting from Sydney he went overland to Port Essington, and was thus the first to explore some of the finest parts of Queensland, and, after passing the borders of the Gulf of Carpentaria, dis- covered the less inviting regions of North Australia. In the course of fifteen months he conducted a party of ten men, save one who died on the way, over more than three thousand miles of ground, most of it never before trodden by Englishmen. In the meanwhile Captain Sturt, who had chiefly encouraged all this enterprise, was not idle. Still in search of the great inland sea, he started on a third expedition in 1844, and wandered about in the interior, until, forced to abandon his old theory, he was induced to adopt a new one, and to believe that the centre of the island was a huge, impassable desert. A desert certainly he found, though he exaggerated its extent. During six rainless months he was detained in a region where, says Mr Stuart, the most notable of his sixteen comrades, " the heat of the sun was so intense that every screw in their boxes was drawn, and aU horn handles and combs split into fine laminae; the lead dropped from their pencils, their finger-nails became as brittle as glass, and 314 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AU8TRAUA. their hair, and the wool on their sheep, ceased to grow."^ For more than a dozen years after his return to Adelaide in 1846, where he had nothing but fruitless discoveries and dismal adventures to report. Captain Sturt's new supposition of a vast inland desert was adopted by the colonists ; or, if disputed, no attempt was made to disprove it. Throughout these dozen years there was plenty of fresh exploration, but it was chiefly along the coast or not far inland, the most important being a series of expeditions by which the northern districts were visited both from Sydney in the far east, and from Perth in the far west. But in 1858 a spirit of bolder enterprise was revived. Its leader was Mr John M'Douall Stuart, who used his experience as a comrade of Sturt's to make no less than six expeditions into the interior between 1858 and 1862. In each of the six he was able to gather much fresh geographical information. The first expedition, in which he was attended only by one white man, and a native who soon ran away, was to Lake Torrens and its neighbourhood, and two other visits were paid to it by him in 1859. The result was his discovery that this district, always before a source of confusion to travellers, some of whom described it as a lake, others as a desert, is both. The winter rains, filling the surrounding channels, turn it into a shallow lake. The summer drought turns it into an arid desert. This, indeed, is the character of much of the interior of Australia, as was further proved to Mr Stuart by his fourth expe- 1 Hardman, "Explorations in Austr&Iik: tlie Journals of John M'Douall Stuart." Stuart's expeditioxs to the interior. 315 dition, undertaken in 1860, when he proceeded to the very middle of the island, and reached the point named after him Central ^Mount Stuart. In 1861 Mr Stuart left Adelaide again, intending in this journey to go right across the continent. He failed at first. An impenetrable forest of scrub blocked the route he had proposed to take, and he was forced to go home for fresh supplies. Next year he was more fortunate. Leaving Adelaide in December 1861, he made a clear passage from south to north, reaching the mouth of the Eiver Adelaide, on the Indian Ocean, in July 1862, and there finding a district which he highly commended as the site for a new colony. " Judging from the experience I have had in travelling through the continent of Australia for the last twenty-two years," he said, " and also from the description that other explorers have given of the different portions they have examined in their journeys, I have no hesitation in saying that the country that I have discovered on and around the banks of the Adelaide Eiver is more favourable than any other part of the continent for the formation of a new colony. The soil is generally of the richest nature ever formed for the benefit of mankind ; black and aHjivial, and capable of producing anything that could be desired, and watered by one of the finest rivers in Australia. This river was found by Lieutenant Helpman to be about four to seven fathoms deep at the mouth, and at one hundred and twenty mUes up (the farthest point he reached) it was found to be about seven fathoms deep and nearly one hundred yards broad, with a clear passage all the way up. I struck it about this point, and 316 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTKALIA. followed it down, encamping fifteen miles from its mouth, and found the water perfectly fresh, and the river broader and apparently very deep ; the country around most excellent, abundantly supplied with fresh water, running in many flowing streams into the Adelaide Eiver, the grass in many places grow- ing six feet high, and the herbage very close — a thing seldom seen in a new country. The timber is chiefly composed of stringy-bark, gum, myall, casurina, pine, and many other descriptions of large timber, all of which will be most useful to new colonists. There is also a plentiful supply of stone in the low rises suitable for building purposes, and any quantity of bamboo can be obtained from the river from two to fifty feet long. I measured one fifteen inches in cir- cumference, and saw many larger. The river abounds in fish and water-fowl of all descriptions. On my arrwal from the coast I kept more to the eastward of my north course, with the intention of seeing farther into the country. I crossed the sources of the running streams before alluded to, and had great difficulty in getting more to the west. They take their rise from large bodies of springs coming from extensive grassy plains, which proves there must be a very considerable underground drainage, as there are no hills of sufficient elevation to cause the supply of water in the streams. I feel confident that, if a new settleiiv^nt is formed in this splendid country, in a few years it will become one of the brightest gems in the British crown. To South Australia, and some of the more remote Australian colonies, the benefits to be derived from the formation of such a colony would be equally advantageous, creating an outlet for their btljaut's site fou a new colony. 317 surplus beef and mutton, vvhicli would be eagerly con- sumed by the races in the Indian Islands, and pay- ment made by the shipment of their useful products. Indeed I see one of the finest openings I an aware of for trading between these islands and a colony formed where I propose." ^ Mr Stuart, however, was not the first Englishman who succeeded in traversing the Australian continent. Wilde he was preparing for his journey from Adelaide, another expedition, disastrous in everything but the cue object for which it was undertaken, was being fitted out at Melboxirne. Its history forms the most affecting episode in all the annals of Australian discovery. A party of seventeen, from whom three soon de- serted, left Melbourne on the 20th of August 1860, under the leadership of Eobert O'Hara Burke, and with William John Wills as second in command. They proceeded in an almost straight line to the north, turning aside to make small excursions on the road, and reached Cooper's Creek, a post just half-way between the northern and southern coasts of Aus- tralia, on the 11th of November. There they halted for more than a month, waiting for fresh supplies which had been ordered to follow from Melbourne ; and at length, on the 11th of December, tired of waiting any longer, Burke resolved to leave the greater part of his company at Cooper's Creek, and to perform the rest of the journey with WiUs and two men, named Gray and King, for his only companions. The travelling was dangerous, and numerous difficul- ties had to be overcome ; but the brave men did ' Hardman. 318 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. overcome them, and on the 10th of February 1861 they reached the Gulf of Carpentaria. Thus far they were fortunate, but no farther. The return journey was utterly wearisome. Gray died on the road, and his comrades were almost too M'eak to bury him. Tired almost to death, they slowly worked their way back to Cooper's Creek. They reached it on the 21st of April, and, to their dismay, found the station deserted. The men left in it had waited four months. On the very morning of the 21st, only a few hours before Burke, Wills, and King came up, they had gone homewards, believing that the others must have been lost. Had the three hastened on the road to the south they might have overtaken them. But they did not know that the chance of safety was so near. So they rested for a day at Cooper's Creek, and then crawled in an easterly direction. For eight weeks they wandered about, making friends of the few natives whom they met, and with their help picking up a scanty supply of food. But such dreary hopeless life could not last long. They grew weaker and sadder every day. " I feel weaker than ever," wrote Wills, in his no. e-book, on the 21st of June, when they had got back to Cooper's Creek, " and can scarcely crawl out of the mia-mia. Unless relief comes in some form or other I cannot possibly last more than a fortnight. Had we come to grief elsewhere, we could only have blamed ourselves ; but here we are returned to Cooper's Creek, where we had every right to look for provisions and clothing, and yet we have to die of starvation." Provisions and clothing had not been left for them, as they should have been ; but, strange IHE EXPEDITION OF BURKE AND WILLS. 319 to say, the man whom tliey had expected seven months before had come up in their absence, had looked about for them in a careless way, and finding no trace of their whereabouts, or even of their exist- ence, had gone home again. Thus, for a second time, cruel misfortune stood in the way of their pre- servation. Believing themselves altogether deserted, they resolved on one last search for some stray blacks who might help them. WiUs was too ill to move, however, and at his earnest request, and in the assurance that herein was their only hope, Burke and King left him on the 27th of June, with a little heap of the best food the woods could yield. " I think to live about four or five days," he wrote in the note-book that he thought might possibly some day reach his father. He died on the 29th. Burke seems to have lived only a day longer. He was not strong enough to walk on as he had intended. After two days of painful travelling, he too had to lie down and die. "I hope," he said to King, "you will remain with me here till I am quite dead. It's a comfort to know that some one is by. But leave me unburied as I lie." King had not long to wait. His companion died next morning. He, however, was strong enough to fight through the terrible battle with hunger and fatigue. He went back to the Creek, buried Wills's body in the sand, loitered in the neighbourhood for some days, was taken prisoner by a tribe of natives, who fed him and used him kindly, and at last he was found by a relief party sent from Melbourne in search of the missing heroes. More than one relief party was so sent ; and the latest explorations in the interior of Australia grew 320 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. out of the efforts — successful when it was too late to do more than take back their bones for sumptuous burial in Melbourne — to discover the fate of these brave men and grievous sufferers. In connection with this later work the names of Alfred William Howitt, of John M'Kinlay, of William Landcs- borough, and of Frederick Walker, must be held in honourable remembrance. But it is not necessary here to detail their exploits. Burke and Wills were not the earliest martyrs of Australian discovery ; but the story fitly ends with them. After aU, it is strange that we know so little con- cerning the great Australian interior. "What we know of this vast continent," says the historian, " does not go much beyond an acquaintance with the coast. One has only to look at the map to be convinced that we have as yet only obtained a very small glance into the interior. A little to the west of Central Mount Stuart an immense blank occurs ; and for twelve and a half degrees of latitude and longitude there is scarcely a mark to teU us what is contained therein. There are two small tracks on the edges, but, with these exceptions, nothing whatever is known of a tract of country nearly half a million square miles in area. Mr A. Gregory described the north side of it as a desert. His brother charac- terized the north-west side in the same manner. Stuart, on the west side, was encountered by large tracts of spinifex grass and stately gum-trees, ap- parently liable to occasional floods. Eyre, on the south side, and the explorers on the west, have been baffled by the same desert. It is, in fact, a sandy table-la d, elevated on the west side, about three THE GREAT INTERIOR. 321 thousand feet above the level of the sea, and sloping down towards Lake Torrens, which is very little, if at all, raised above the surface of the ocean. From lake Torrens and Lake Eyre it appears to rise again first in a range, and then in a series of terraces. This elevation terminates at last in the high, rugged Cor- dillera of the eastern coast. We may, therefore, regard the continent as tilted up on each side, and depressed in the centre to a kind of trough. The Gulf of Carpentaria would represent the northern portion, and the deep indented part of Spencer's Gulf the southern. Since, however, the northern coast is also tilted up, the trough or depression does not extend through the continent. It is a series of salt lakes, sand drifts, and stony deserts. A great portion of it is redeemed by the fact that it receives so much drainage from the east by the various channels of the Barcoo, and from the west by waters which burst out in the form of immense thermal springs. The extent and number of the latter is almost incredible, and the depth from which they come is manifested by the great heat of their waters. Nothing could more clearly show the character of the central de- pression, and the slow rate at which the table-land sinks down towards it, than the existence of these springs. Of the Sandy Desert, the greater portion is thickly covered with spinifex grass ; but there are drifts of sand, with no vegetation whatever upon them, extending for several miles. This is probably drifted up into masses after the decomposition of the ferruginous sandstone. The siliceous fragments left behind form those shingle plains known as the Stony Desert ; they exist over a far greater tract than that X 322 WEST AUSTRALIA AND WASTE AUSTRALIA. marked in the old maps of Australia as extending like an arm northwards from Lake Torrens. It would seem as if the decomposition of the rock here was owing in some measure to pressure, when the table- land on either side was uplifted. Thus we see that, after all the explorations have been made, we have adopted, with modification, the theory of the earlier colonists. It was thought in Oxley's time that the interior rivers must flow towards a central depres- sion, and there form a kind of inland sea. Long after the abandonment of this theory we find it to be true, to a certain extent, and it is realized in Lake Eyre, the extent of which is as yet undetermined. The inland lake theory was abandoned, after Stuart's discoveries, in favour of a central desert. This, it appears, is also true in a modified sense. Let us hope that there are such germs of truth in aU the predictions about the future of Australia, and that it may realize the aspirations of those who look upon it as the seed of a vast and flourishing empire."^ ■■ Woods, vol. ii. pp. 509-513. Besides Mr Woods's very valu- able " History of the Discovery and Exploration of Australia," there is a hardly less interesting " History of Discovery in Australia, Tasmania, and New Zealand," by Mr William Howitt. Among the many personal records of travel and adventure, Mr William Wills's account of his son's noble and melancholy history, entitled '• A Successful Exploration through the Interior of Australia," is especially noteworthy. CHAPTER XXVI. PAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. THE NEW ZEALAND ISLANDS AND THEIR INHABITANTS — FIRST INTERCOURSE WITH ENGLISHMEN — THE MASSACRE OF THE CREW AND PASSENGERS OF THE " BOYD " IN 1809 — THE MIS- 6I0NARIES AND THEIR WORK — THE PAKEHA TRADERS — AETICLES OF TRADE — TRAFFIC . IN HUMAN HEADS — OTHER DEBASING EMPLOYMENTS OF THE PAKEHAS — PROGRESS OF ENGLISH INFLUENCES — SPREAD OF CIVILIZATION — THE CHARACTER OF THE MAORIS. [1809-1839.] HE three islands of New Ulster, New Mun- ster, and New Leinster, which, with a number of smaller islands, make up the colony of New Zealand, have an area of 106,200 square miles, being rather less than the dimensions of Great Britain and Ireland. The middle island occupies rather more than half of the whole ; the northern island is a little smaller ; the southern island, much less in size, is little more than a barren rock, about half as large as Yorkshire. The group differs widely — in climate, in scenery, and in the character of its inhabitants — from Australia and Tasmania. The aborigines of all three sections of Australasia may have been of the same stock ; but in New Zealand, probably in the fifteenth cen- tury, they were exterminated or absorbed by a bolder Malayan race, which crossed over in canoes from the Polynesian region, and formed the Maori nation. B23 324 PAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. The adventures of Captain Cook and other early voyagers among the ]\Iaoris have already been refened to. Subsequent navigators carried on the irregular intercourse, and in some instances tolerably friendly relations were established between the natives and their visitors. Whaling and other ships from New South Wales halted frequently iu tlie New Zealand ports ; and now and then some of tlie natives went back in these ships to see for them- selves the strange novelties of civilized life in Sydney. Among others, we are told, " a powerful chief named Tippahee, accompanied by his five sons, came to Port Jackson, and, on seeing the different arts and manu- factures carried on by the settlers, was so affected by the conviction thus forced upon him of the barbarous state of ignorance in which his own country was shrouded, that he burst into tears and exclaimed, in the bitterness of his heart, 'New Zealand no good !"'^ When Tippahee returned to his island home, which was in the extreme north of New Ulster, in the Bay of Islands, at which the English vessels generally touched, he took with him a young Englishman named George Bruce. Bruce, the first European resident in New Zealand, married a native wife, and lived happily among her kindred for many years, doing much, it would seem, to prepare for the closer relations that were soon to spring up between the two races. These relations were from the first marked by some ugly incidents. In December 1809, a trading-ship, the Boyd, with seventy persons on board, left Sydney for England, and, as she intended to go round by New Zealand, and there call for some spars to be ' Mai'tin, vol. iii. p. 118. EARLY DEALINGS WITH THE MAORIS. 325 sold at the Cape of Good Pope, the captain con- sented to take with him four or five natives of Wangaroa, who were anxious to return home. On the passage some extra work had to be done, and the captain ordered the New Zealanders to share it with the sailors. One of them, known as George, refused on the plea that he was ill, and that, he being a chiefs son, the labour was degrading to his rank. " The captain," it is recorded, " treated both representations with ridicule, and had him twice tied up to the gang- way and severely flogged, at the same time lessening his allowance of food. In reply to the taunting assertion that he was no chief, George merely remarked that they would find him to be such on their arrival in his country ; and so well did he disguise the revengeful passions excited by the treat- ment he had received, as to persuade the captain to put in at Wangaroa, where his tribe resided, as the best place for procuring the spars, although it was not known that the harbour had ever before been visited by auy European vessel. On arriving, the crafty savage landed alone, and, after a brief interview with some of his tribe, returned to the ship and invited the captain to come on shore and point out the trees that would best suit his pur- pose. Three boats were accordingly manned, and the captain landed and proceeded with his party towards a wood. They had no sooner entered it than they w^ere attacked by the savages, and every one of them was put to instant death. George and his associates disguised themselves in the clothes of the victims — it being now dark — and -went off in the boats to the Boyd. They got on board by a stratagem, and then 326 PAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. slaughtered indiscriminately every man, woman, and child, excepting five seamen, who had escaped to the shrouds, a woman and two children, and a cabin-boy whom George preserved in gratitude for kindness he had received from him during the voyage. "When morning dawned upon the Ul-fated vessel, the sailors who had taken refuge in the rigging stdl maintained their dreary watch, until Tippahee, the chief who had visited New South Wales, came alongside in his canoe, and, informing them that he had just arrived from the Bay of Islands to trade for dried fish, offered them his protection. The men descended, entered his canoe, and were safely landed by him, although closely pursued by the Wangaroa tribe. But on shore the savages soon overtook them, and, forcibly detaining the old chief, murdered the others before his face. The ship was thoroughly ransacked, the muskets and ammunition being deemed invaluable. The father of George, eager to try a gun of which he had taken possession, burst in the head of a cask of gunpowder, filled the pan, snapped the lock over the cask, and was himself, with thirteen of his com- panions, blown to atoms." ^ Thus a partial retribution fell upon the Wangaroa natives for their barbarous action. It must be remembered, however, that they alone were not guilty. The captain of the Boyd was as foolish, and with less excuse, in stirring up the evil passions of the New Zealanders by his treatment of the chiefs son, as was the chief in setting fire to the powder cask. Englishmen, accustomed to think that all inferior races may be treated with any harshness » Martin, vol. iii. pp. 118, 119. CIVILIZED AND UNCIVILIZED BARBARITIES. 327 and injustice, sometimes forget that a single spark of cruelty may kindle the overpowering wrath of a whole race of savages, and then proceed to rival those savages in the ferocity of the punishment they accord to WTong-doing which they have themselves provoked. That is the painfnl and humiliating moral of the story of our relations with New Zealand. Many mischiefs sprang from this disaster of the Boyd. Tippahee, who had done all he could in aid of the English, was soon afterwards attacked in his island-home by some whalers who supposed tiat he was the author of the massacre. Manv. ot his sub- jects, of both sexes and all ages, were murdered, and their gardens were destroyed. He himself was wounded ; and soon afterwards he was killed in battle with the Wangaroa people, who resented the smaU part he had been able to take on the side of the English. His people, formerly friends of the English, but now their enemies with good reason, next mur- dered some white sailors who came in their way. And so the dismal work went on. In this same year, however, efforts began to be made for bringing about a better state of things. Mr Marsden, a clergyman in New South Wales, induced the Church Missionary Society of London to organize a machinery for the conversion of the New Zea- landers, urging that the missionaries sent out should be teachers of agriculture, mechanical arts, and other branches of civilization, as well as of Christianity. The suggestion was adopted, and in 1814 the first missionaries arrived in New Zealand, soon to be followed by others, and they were able to send home flattering reports of the success of their work. They 328 PAKEIIA NEW ZEALAND. made many converts, at any rate, in the northern districts, to which for some time their operations, as well as the visits of the whalers and traders, were confined. Some tribes resented their interference, and regarded their appropriation of lands for churches, schools, and houses, as the beginning of an aggressive movement that would end in the extinction of all native rights ; and the stoutest of all their opponents, the same George who had caused the massacre of the crew and passengers of the Boyd, proposed to extir- pate them, alleging that " he feared that the intro- duction of Europeans would eventually lead to the destruction of his countrymen, or that they would be reduced to the miserable condition of the Australian aborigines, whom he had seen lying intoxicated in the streets of Sydney, and begging their food from door to door, suppliants for the necessaries of Life from those who had possessed themselves of their country and its resources."^ But most of the Maoris were not so far-seeing. Equally impulsive in their appreciation of kindness and in their resentment of injuries, they listened readily to the good-hearted men who came to instruct them, not merely in religion, but also in everyday civilization. The missionaries were better teachers, at any rate, than many of the traders who, having gradually got into the way of calling at friendly ports for timber and other native produce, now also began to settle down in the country. At first, and in most districts, they were welcomed more heartily than the mission- aries. " When the first straggling ships came here," says one of them, "the smallest bit of iron was a ^ Martin, voL iii. p. 124. MISSIONARIES AND TRADERS. 329 prize so inestimable that I might be thought to exaggerate were I to tell the bare truth on the subject. The excitement and speculation caused by a ship being seen off the coast were immense. Where would she anchor? What iron could l)e got from her ? Would it be possible to seize her ? The oracle was consulted; preparations were made to follow her along the coast, even through an enemy's country, at all risks ; and when she disappeared she was not forgotten, but would continue long to be the subject of anxious expectation and speculation. After this regular trading began. The great madness then was for muskets and gunpowder. A furious competition was kept up. Should any tribe fail to procure a stock of these articles as soon as its neigh- bours, extermination was its probable doom. After the demand for arms was supplied, came a perfect furor for iron tools, instruments of husbandry, cloth- ing, and all kinds of Pakeha manufactures."^ The Pakehas, or foreigners, who brought these articles, were gladly received by the New Zealanders, who, having very rough notions as to the rights of property, generally tried first to steal the coveted commodities, and, if they failed therein, made the best bargain they could with the traders. It is more than likely that the merchants were not very honest in their dealings with these natives, and that they did them far more harm than good by their intercourse. Their ways of trade were often l9,wless, fraud being met by fraud, and theft by violence; and the things in which they traded were some of them altogether obnoxious. The rum and muskets and * " Old New Zealand," by a Pakeha Maori, pp. 94, 95. 330 PAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. gunpowder which they brought into the country tended greatly to demoralize the people, and to encourage and give deadly issue to the feuds that were always frequent between different tribes. The flax, gum, and other commodities that they took in exchange for these stores were the fruits of wholesome labour, whereby the natives were greatly benefited; but, in these old times, there was one article of com- merce which, though not produced in great quantities, was a source of terrible degradation. Some adven- turous trader having taken away a few of the heads which it was customary for the New Zealanders to sever from the bodies of their slain enemies, to be dried and kept as treasures, these barbarous trophies became attractive to the vulgar curiosity-hunters in Australia and in Europe; and in the end traffic in heads became a regular branch of Pakeha trade. The thing itself was bad and disgusting enough ; but when the price paid for the heads ran high enough to become a premium upon murder, the traffic becai^e indeed degrading. We are told of plenty of this horrible work. " The skippers of many of the colonial trading schooners," it is said by an eye-witness of the traffic, " were always ready to deal with a man who had ' a real good head,' and used to commission low Pakehas to ' pick up heads ' for them. It is a positive fact that the head of a live man was sold and paid for beforehand, and afterwards honestly delivered 'as per agreement.'"^ 1 « Old New Zealand," p. 59. The author tells (pp. 54-56) how, soon after his arrival, he came by accident upon a collection of heads, ready cured for the market and exposed for sale, under the charge of one of the disreputable whites who engaged in the traific. " One had undoubtedly been a warrior ; there was something bold TRAFFIC IN HUMAN HEADS. 331 All respectable Pakehas of course abstained from this most loathsome branch of New Zealand trade, which lasted till about the year 1830 ; but there was much evil in even their best intercourse witli the natives. When they could make profit out of the bad passions of the people, they too often used their opportunities. Sometimes we find them in league with the natives for carrying out their most revolting practices. Of this one instance will suffice. "In December 1830," we are told, "a Captain Stewart, commanding the brig Elizabeth, on promise of ten tons of flax, took a hundred New Zealanders from Kapiti, or Entry Island, in Cook's Straits, to Takou, in Banks's Peninsula, concealed in his vessel. He then enticed on board the chief of Takou, his brother, his two daughters, and some others who came unsus- picious of any ambush. On entering the captain's cabin the door was locked upon the unhappy chief, and defiant about the look of the head. Another was the head of a very old man, grey, shrivelled, and wrinkled. I was going on with my observations when I was saluted by a voice from behind with 'Looking at the eds, sir?' It was one of the Pakehas formerly mentioned. 'Yes,' said I, turning round just the least possible thing quicker than ordinary. "Eds has been a getting scarce, says he. 'I should think so,' says I. 'We an't 'ad a 'ed this long time,' says he. 'The devil!' says I. 'One of them 'eds has been hurt bad,' says he. 'I should think all were rather so,' says I. 'Oh, no,' only one on 'em,' says he ; 'the skull is split, and it won't fetch nothing,' says he. 'Oh, murder! I see now,' says I. "Eds was werry scarce,' says he, shaking his own 'ed. 'Ah!' said I. 'They had to tattoo a slave a bit ago,' says he, 'and the ^-illain ran away, tattooin' and all! ' says he. 'What?' said I. 'Bolted afore he was fit to kiU,' says he. 'Stole off with his own head?' says I. 'That's just it,' says he. ' Capital felony,' says I. 'You may say that, sir,' says he. 'Good morning,' said I, and walked away pretty smartly." 332 PAKEIIA NEW ZEALAND. his hands were tied, a hook with a cord attached was stuck through the skin of his throat, under the side of his jaw, and the line fastened to some part of the cabin, in which state of torture he M-as kept for two days, until the vessel arrived at Kapiti, when he was put to death. All the men and women who accom- panied the chief were massacred. As a crowning enormity, the 'ship's coppers' are even stated to have been employed in cooking the remains of the victims for the cannibals, whose brutal ferocity was not yet satiated."^ These circumstances, with many others of almost equal enormity, showing that some of the Pakehas abstained from no wrong-doing which could increase their influence with friendly tribes and pro- mote their trading enterprises, were reported to Vis- count Goderich, then Colonial Secretary, in 1831. "It is impossible," he said, in a despatch to Sir liichard Bourke, the Governor of New South Wales, who had declared his inability to prevent the vicious practices, " to read, without shame and indignation, the details which these documents disclose. The unfortunate natives of New Zealand, unless some decisive measures of prevention be adopted, will, I fear, be shortly added to the number of those bar- barous tribes, who, in different parts of the globe, have fallen a sacrifice to their intercourse with civi- lized men who bear and disgrace the name of Chris- tians. When, for mercenary purposes, the natives of Europe minister to the passions by which these savages are inflamed against each other, and introduce them to the knowledge of depraved acts and licentious gratifications of the most debased inhabitants of our 1 Martin, vol. iii. pp. 125, 126. EDUCATION OF THE MAORIS. 333 great cities, tlie inevitable consequence is a rapid decline of population, preceded by every variety of suffering. Considering what is the character of a large part of the population of New South Wales and Van Dieman's Land, and what oppoitunities of settling themselves in New Zealand are afforded them by the extensive intercourse which has recently been estab- lished, adverting also to the conduct which has been pursued in these islands by the masters and crews of British vessels, I cannot contemplate the two pro- bable results without the deepest anxiety." That that anxiety was well-founded the later history of New Zealand abundantly proves. The efforts of the British Government and the authorities of New South Wales, to which New Zealand gradually became a sort of appendage, were only successful in checking the worst exhibitions of misconduct on the part of the Pakeha traders among the Maoris. These Pakehas became more numerous and more influential. All along the shores of the northern island they made their settlements and extended their operations. Land they rarely sought to buy, and thus they were not regarded as aggressors by the natives, and escaped much jealousy that attended the progress of the missionaries among all who did not yield to their religious influences. Two parties, indeed, grew up in New Zealand, and gained strength during the thirty years or so previous to the formation of a regular colony. Both parties abandoned some of their primitive barbarism under English teaching ; the one taking their lessons from traders whose instruction, advantageous in some respects, was pernicious in most ; the others being 334 PAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. guided by missionarieSj who, seeking to do only good, and succeeding to a gisat extent, also did serious harm by favouring their converts, and encouraging them in professions of authority over their heathen neighbours, and in schemes of aggression which, thought by the missionaries to be helpful to the spread of Christianity, have produced very different fruit. The appearances were greater than the reality, yet during this period the New Zealanders were, in many respects, greatly improved by their contact with the Englishmen. " At Waimati," said Mr Charles Darwin, the eminent naturalist, who visited New Zealand in 1835, "there are three large houses where missionaries reside, and near them are the huts of the native labourers. On an adjoining slope fine crops of barley and wheat were standing in full ear, and in another part fields of potatoes and clover. There were large gardens with every fruit and vege- table which England produces, and many belonging to warmer climates. Around the farm-yard there were stables, a thrashing-barn, with its winnowing machine, a blacksmith's forge, and, on the ground, ploughshares and other tools. In the middle was that happy mixture of pigs and poultry, lying comfortably together, as in every English farm-yard. At the distance of a few hundred yards, where the water of a little rill had been dammed up into a pool, there was a large and substantial water-mill. This is very surprising when it is considered that five years ago nothing but the fern flourished here." ^ 1 Darwin, "Researches into the Natural History of Various Countries," p. 425. EDUCATIOJT OF THE MAORIS. 335 If this more complete civilization existed only in small districts, its effects were wide spread. Native warfare became much less frequent than it had been in former times, and many chieftains were encouraged to cultivate the arts of peace ; although it was impos- sible to utterly eradicate habits that had become a second nature to them. A characteristic anecdote is related by Mr Darwin. " A missionary," he says, " found a chief and his tribe in preparation for war ; their muskets clean and bright, and their ammuni- tion ready. He reasoned long on the inutility of the war, and the little provocation which had been given for it. The chief was much shaken in his resolution, and seemed in doubt. But at length it occurred to him that a barrel of gunpowder was in a bad state, and that it would not keep much longer. This settled the matter."^ Exaggerated views of the Maori character, both in its good and in its bad aspects, having in later times been promulgated, it will be well to adduce the truthful opinion arrived at by one who had long opportunities of observation during the time of Paheka influence. " They are," he says, " neither so good nor so bad as their friends and enemies have painted them, and, I suspect, are pretty much like what almost any other people would have become if subjected to the same external circumstances. For ages they have struggled against necessity in all its shapes. This has given to them a remarkable greedi- ness for gain in every visible and immediately tan- gible form. Without the aid of iron, the most trifling tool or utensil could only be procured by an enor- ' Darwin, p. 419. 336 PAKEHA NEW ZEALAND. mously disproportionate outlay of labour in its con- struction, and, in consequence, it became precious to a degree scarcely conceivable by people of civilized and wealthy countries. This great value, attached to personal property of all kinds, increased propor- tionately the temptation to plunder ; and where no law existed, or could exist, of sufficient force to repress the inclination, every man, as a natural con- sequence, became a soldier, if it were only for the defence of his own property and that of those who were banded with him, his tribe or family. From this state of things regular warfare arose, as a matter of course. The military art was studied as a science, and brought to great perfection, as applied to the arms used, and a marked military character was given to the people. The necessity of labour, the necessity of warfare, and a temperate climate, gave them strength of body, accompanied by a persever- ance and energy of mind perfectly astonishing. With rude and blunt stones they felled the giant kauri, toughest of pines ; and from it, in process of time, at an expense of labour, perseverance, and ingenuity astounding to those who know what it really was, they produced, carved, painted, and inlaid, a master- piece of art and an object of beauty — the war-canoe, capable of carrying a hundred men on a distant expedition, through the boisterous seas surrounding their island. As a consequence of their warlike habits and character, they are self-possessed and confident in themselves and their own powers, and have much diplomatic finesse and casuistry at com- mand. Their intelligence causes them theoretically to acknowledge the benefits of law, which they see THE CHARACTER OF THE MAORIS. 337 established among us ; but their hatred of restraint causes them practically to abhor and resist its full enforcement amongst themselves. Doubting our professions of friendship, fearing our ultimate designs, led astray by false friends, possessed of that ' little learning ' which is, in their case, most emphatically ' a dangerous thing ;' such are the people with whom we are now in contact ; such the people to whom, for our own safety and their preservation, we must give new laws and institutions, new habits of life, new ideas, sentiments, and information — whom we must either civilize, or, by our mere contact, exterminate."* 1 " Old New Zealand," pp. 91-93. CHAPTER XXVII. NEW ZEALAND COLONIZATION. THE OLD PAKEHA POPULATION — THE NEW ZEALAND COMPANY — ESTAIiLISIIMENT OF BPvITISH SOVEREIGNTY IN NEW ZEALANH, AND ITS CONSTEUCTION AS A REGULAR. COLONY — ITS PROGRESS LAND-QUARRELS WITH THE NATIVES — THEIR ATTEMPTED PROTECTION BY THE GOVERNMENT — THE INFLUENCE OF THE MISSIONARIES — LATER GROWTH OF THE COLONY. [1839-1867.] X the early part of 1839 there were about two thousand Pakehas, or English resi- dents, in New Zealand, some of them as missionaries and their dependants, but most of them as traders of one sort or another. They were scattered along the shore, and in various inland parts, though chiefly in the northern island, or New Ulster, and especially in its most northern dis- tricts. Kororarika, in the Bay of Islands, was the locality most frequented by them; and there, in 1838, a sort of republic had been formed, with laws of its own making, for mutual assistance and protection in dealings with the natives. The report of this organi- zation seems to have encouraged some English ad- venturers in the adoption of schemes, previously advanced, for establishing in New Zealand a regular colony. The schemes had taken shape in the founding, in 1837, of a New Zealand Association, designed to carry out plans very similar to those that already 33S THE NEW ZEALAND COMPANY. 339 had been tried and liad failed in South Aus- tralia. In both cases the guiding genius was INIr Edward Gibbon Wakefield; and here the proposal was at once to buy up from the natives large tracts of land to be sold to private adventurers, to whom special inducements were to be offered for extending English civilization over the whole country, — all which, it was expected, would in a short time pass from its native owners and become English pro- perty. The association, being refused a charter, was dissolved; but in 1838 it was revived as the New Zealand Company, which, its proposals being again rejected by the Government, proceeded to put them in force without authority. It had many supporters, and Colonel Wakefield, the son of the projector, went out with a party of pioneers. He reached Cook's Straits in August 1839, and in the course of two months went through the form of buying land, on both sides of the channel, wdiich formed in all a territory as large as Ireland, for about £1500 worth of muskets, gunpowder, tomahawks, pocket-hand- kerchiefs, tobacco, Jews' harps, and other articles ; being at the rate of about sixpennyworth of goods for every thousand acres. The chieftains of whom it was bought had, of course, no right to sell it ; but, if this was known to the leaders of the enterprise, it was not understood by most of the colonists who were induced to join in the work, and who, soon after landing, found themselves involved in serious diffi- culties with the natives on account of their aggres- sions. They had difficulties also with the Englisli Govern- ment. In June 1839 instructions were sent out by 340 NEW ZEALAND COLONIZATION. Lord Normanby, tlien Colonial Secretary, to the Governor of New Sovith Wales, aiitliorizing him to regard all British residents in Xew Zealand as his subjects, and, both on their belialf and in the interests of the natives, to treat witli the latter for the pur- chase of land. These instructions, designed especially as a curb upon the ill-planned projects of the New Zealand Company, were wise and generous. "The Queen," it was there said, " disclaims, for herself and for her subjects, every pretension to seize on the islands of New Zealand, or to govern them as a part of the dominion of Great Britain, imless the free and intelligent consent of the natives, expressed according to their established usages, shall be first obtained." Careful directions were given with a view to secur- ing this end, and to the observance of sincerity, justice, and good -faith in all dealings with the natives. " Nor is this all," it was added. " They must not be permitted to enter into any contracts in which they might be ignorant and unintentional authors of injuries to themselves. You will not, for example, purchase from them any territory, the reten- tion of which by them vouid bo essential or highly conducive to their own comfort, safety, or subsistence. The acquisition of land by the Crown for the future settlement of British subjects must be confined to such districts as the natives can alienate without distress or serious inconvenience to themselves. To secure the observance of this will be one of the first duties of their official protector."^ The English Government cannot be blamed for the troubles that began in that early day, and have lately 1 " Tarliamentary Papers," 1840, pp. 37-42, ESTABLISHMENT OF BRITISH SOVEREIGXTY. 341 become very grievous, tlirougli the greed of private speculators, and tlie jealous, violent patriotism of the. New Zealauders. In accordance with the instruc- tions issued by Lord Xormanby, Captain Hobson was sent to New Zealand as lieutenant-governor. He reached Kororarika, in tlie Bay of Islands, on tlie 29th of January 1840, and there established the rule of English law in lieu of the self-governing regula- tions of its British residents. In February he had a conference with forty-six chiefs of the islands and neighbouring mainland, and submitted to them a treaty by which they recognised the sovereignty of Queen Victoria, on condition of having all their local rights and privileges respected. " Send the man away !" said one chief, with whom many sympathized. " Do not sign thi paper. If you do, you will be reduced to the condition of slaves, and be obliged to break stones to make roads. Your land will be taken from you, and your dignity as chiefs will be destroyed." But other chiefs thought differently, and urged so eloquently the value of alliance with Great Britain tliat all were convinced, and the treaty was signed. " You must be our father !" said the leader of this friendly party to Captain Hobson. " You must not allow us to become slaves ! you must preserve our customs, and never permit our lands to be wrested from us !" Captain Hobson afterwards visited the principal parts of New Ulster, and sent a deputy on a like tour through New Mun- ster. Everywhere he received the submission of the principal chiefs. Thus British sovereignty was commenced in New Zealand. On the 16th of November 1840 the colony of New 342 NEW ZEALAND COLONIZATION. Zealand was established by charter, and Captain Hobson was appointed its first governor. He was empowered to grant " waste and uncleared lands " to European settlers, " provided that nothing shall affect or be construed to affect the rights of any aboriginal natives of the colony, to the actual occupation or enjoyment in their own persons, or in the persons of their descendants, of any lands now occupied or en- joyed by such natives." Captain Hobson was also enjoined " to promote education among the native inhabitants ; to protect them in their persons, and in the free enjoyment of their possessions ; by all means to prevent and restrain all violence and injustice which may in any manner be practised or attempted against them; and to take such measures as may appear necessary for their conversion to the Christian faith, and for their advancement in civilization." No colony ever began better in theory; but in practice the generous principles propounded were found utterly untenable. The native chiefs, in yield- ing submission to the English Crown, thought they were only confemng on it magisterial powers, and in- tended to keep their territorial rights intact. In the treaty nothing had been said about "waste lands," and the natives considered that there were no " waste lands" at all in the country. Every acre, whether cultivated or left desolate, had some individual claimant, or was regarded as the common property of the members of some tribe ; and, though at first they offered no objection to small appropriations of land on the coast, especially when they knew that the monster pretensions of the New Zealand Company were repudiated by the Government, their jealousy DIFFICULTIES AT STAKTIXG. 343 was aroused as soon as larger allotments began to Le made. This was soon the case. The New Zealand Company had caused a tide of emigration, which was strengthened as soon as the country was known to be formally annexed to the Crown ; and however zealously Captain Hobson sought to act u.pon his instructions and respect all native rights, he could not bring himself to send back the English settlers, or prevent them from acquiring property which, even if it seemed to be fairly bought, was soon declared by the natives to have been wrongfully taken pos- session of. In other respects, too, his instructions were found to be inconsistent. He was to respect all native rights ; he was also to extend civilization. Among the rights most dear to the natives were some, like cannibalism or the practice of human sacrifices, which no civilized institutions could tole- rate ; and in the efforts made to suppress them great offence was given to many of the people who, it had been expected, would be the most faithful supporters of English rule. On these and kindred points it is not here necessary to enter into details ; but they must be borne in mind as explaining the ill- will which, if suppressed at first, was destined to break out in the deplorable occurrences of our own day. There was not, however, much show of ill-will in the beginning of the colony's history. It progressed rapidly. In the four years ending with IMay 1843, the New Zealand Company sent out 8796 colonists, and others came by other channels. The population numbering about 2000 in 1839, had increased to 11,948 in 1844, and to 20,396 in 1849. It has con- 344 NEW ZEALAND COLONIZATION, tinued to increase very rapidly. In 1858 it amounted to 59,254, in 1864 to 173,618, and in 1867 to 218,668. Nine little colonies, now the centres of as many provinces, have grown up in New Zealand. Auck- land, to which the centre of government was trans- ferred from the Bay of Islands, is the most northern of these, and from its official associations as well as from the excellent position of its harhour, and its con- sequent facilities for trade, was for a long time the richest and most populous. Below it, on the western side of New Ulster, the settlement of New Ply- mouth, or Taranki, "the garden of New Zealand," was founded in 1841 by some adventurers from the west of England. Wellington, occupying the southern part of the island, begun a year earlier, was the chief scene of the operations of the New Zealari Com- pany, and prospered in spite of the serious difficulties that attended its early history, owing to dispute. 3 with the natives concerning land-claims, which the ' rn- ment could only settle by giving oifei:xCe i o settlers and to natives. Napier, the north-,; of this section, afterwards became the capital '. province of Hawke's Bay, stretching up to Anokiaud on the eastern side. Nelson, forming the northern portion of New Munster, was another settlement of the New Zealand Company, dating from 1841, and for some time it was the only centre of colonization in the middle island. Its eastern half was afterwards converted into the separate province of Marlborough. The southern district — from wliich the portion known as Southland was subsequently detached — was colo- nized in 1847 under the name of Otago ; and Canter- bury, occupjdng the centre of New Munster, -was in- THE NINE PROVINCES. 345 augurated in 1850. These twc latter settlements, after long strugj.'ling against misfortunes, and vainly attempting to become model religious colonies, the one Presbyterian, the other Episcopalian, have recently been made the most prosperous of all, owing to the discovery in them of profitable gold- fields. The history of these nine settlements, diverse and complicated, but monotonous in its series of quarrels concerning land between settlers and natives, need not be recounted. Each settlement gradually grew from a sea-port in which the colonists first made sure their footing, and thence, step by step, encroached upon the inland possessions of the Maoris, and so aroused their hatred, to be long suppressed, or only exhibited in occasional and partial outbursts of fury, but to be in no way lessened by time. The discontent of the natives was restrained by two causes, the prudent behaviour of the Government and the powerfid. influence of the missionaries. Cap- tain Hobson found it impossible to hinder the aggressive action of tl^.e colonists ; but he was zealous in his endeavours to see that, at any rate, partial justice was done to the natives, whereby he earned the vehement opposition of most of his white subjects. He died in 1842, but his policy was con- tinued, as far as the difficult circumstances allowed, by his successor, Captain Eitzroy, and by the third governor. Captain, now Sir George, Grey, who ruled from 1845 to 1853, and who had a hearty coadjutor in Mr, now Sir Edward, Eyre, who was appointed lieutenant-governor of New ^lunster. But gover- nors could not do much. 346 NEW ZEAI VND COLONIZATION. The chief pacificators of the Maoris were the missionaries. Their disinterested and persevering labours had made many converts before New Zealand became a colony in 1840, and after that date they carried on their work so zealously that nearly all the natives were in the end made Christians in name. The religious influence was not very deep, but in outward show it was very great, and it was not all superficial. The worst vices of the IMaoris have been nearly eradicated, and the worst barbarities in which they now indulge bear no comparison to those which w^ere the rule in former times. For many years it seemed not only as if their heathen customs had been altogethi3r rooted out, but as if they had been taught the harder lesson of patient submission to the aggressive policy of the English settlers. Here and there there were violent outbursts of vindictive fury; but generally, and in most districts, the natives were induced to give way, if not without murmuring, at any rate without open resistance. It was no slight achievement to persuade them meekly to abandon their homesteads and go farther into the forests, making no bolder com- plaint than appeared in such pathetic chants as this :— "The sun shines, but we quit our land ; we abandon for ever its forests, its groves, its lakes, its shores. All its fair fisheries here, under the bright sun, we renounce for ever. It is a lovely day ; fair will be the children that are born to-day ; but we quit our land. In some parts there is forest ; in others, the ground is skimmed over by the birds in their flight ; Upon the trees there is fruit ; in the streams, fish ; in the fields, potatoes ; fern-trees in the bush ; but we quit our land." THE PEOGllESS OF THE COLONY. ;-547 The fertility and beauty of Xew Zealand, " the Britain of the South," might well endear it to its native possessors. But for some time very slender use was made by tlie English colonists of its natural resources. Until the gold-fields were discovered, the trade and enterprise of the colony did not even keep pace with its growth of population ; but then the new emigrants who arrived appeared to have infused a new energy into the whole community. In 1852 the im- ports were only worth £359,444:, the exports £145,972, In 1863 the imports amounted in value to £7,024,674, and the exports to £3,485,405. More than two-thirds of the latter, £2,432,479, consisted of gold and gold- dust. The other staple was wool, of which 12,585,980 pounds, worth £830,495, were exported. In 1866 the total exports, amounting to £4,520,074, included £2,898,412 worth of gold, and £1,354,152 worth of V lol, representing 22,810,776 pounds. In 1858 the sheep in the colony from whom the wool was obtained numbered only 1,523,324. In 1864 they were 4,937,273, and in 1867, 8,418,579. Between 1858, when the gold-fields were first opened, and 1860, the metal extracted from them and exported amounted in value to £98,455, In 1861 it was £752,657; since then it has averaged nearly £2,500,000 a year — the ten years' yield up to September 1868 being £16,404,673. In 1867 about one-third of the white population was in the northern island, and two-thirds w^ere in the southern, — about a quarter each in Auckland, Canterbury, and Otago, and the remaining quarter in the six other provinces. CHAPTEE XXVIII. NEW ZEALAND WAKFAEE. THH RIVA^ RACES IN NEW ZEALAND — THE MAORI WARS OF 1843 AND THE FOLLOWING YEARS — THE SUBSEQUENT CONDITION OF THE MAORIS — THEIR CIVILIZATION — THEIR NUMBERS — TEE RENEWAL OF HOSTILITIES — THE KING-MOVEMENT AND ITS ISSUE — HOSTILITIES IN 1860 AND 1861 — THE WAR OF 1863-1865 — NATURE OF THE STRIFE — LATER GUERILLA WARFARE — THE PAI-MARIRE OR HAU-HAU SUPERSTITION — THE FUTURE OF NEW ZEALAND. [1813-1869.] UEING- some three hundred years, if not for a much longer time, the Maoris were in undisturbed possession of New Zealand. They cultivated their fields and caught their fish and game, and enjoyed themselves in their own barbarous M'ay. Endless warfare prevailed between rival tribes p"^ clans, and it was often attended by hideous atrocities ; but in spite of this and other drawbacks, a fine race of savages grew up, almost superior to any other savage race of v/hich we know. Then the Pakehas came among them, some as missionaries., others as traders ; and though their numbers were few, their influence was rapidly felt among nearly the whole community of natives. Civilization, partly good and partly bad, but equally powerful whether good or bad, began a rapid disin- tegration of the barbarous elements; and, though many held aloof in sullen wrath, the great majority ats THE RIVAL RACES IN NEW ZEALAND. 349 of the IMaoris were attracted to European institutions, like iron to the loadstone. That preparation for English colonization lasted for about thirty years, and it was followed by regular colonial enterprise, which has lasted for just thirty other years. That it w^U continue and increase, until " the Britain of the South" becomes worthy of its title, cannot be doubted, and the only question to be solved is as to the length of time that must elapse before the natives are alto- gether driven out, and the whole of Maori-land becomes Pakeha-land; but there are some features in the struggle now going on, and apparently ap- proaching its end, which are well worth noting. That New Zealand should cease to be a mere haunt of lawless savages, however noble may be some characteristics of their savage life, and should become the great centre of civilized enterprise and civilizing agency for which its natural features and its place in the South Pacific Ocean make it specially adapted, is a change of which the wisest and most far-seeing philanthropy cannot but approve, however much we may deplore some of the conditions of the change. Even the natives themselves are conscious of the necessity, and, while loth to give up the struggle, know that it cannot be carried on for xeif much longer. " As the Pakeha fly has driven out the Alaori fly," they sing, in one of their plaintive chants ; " as the Pakeha grass has killed the Maori grass ; as the Pakeha rat has slain the Maori rat ; as the Pakeha clover has starved the Maori fern ; so will the Pakeha push back and destroy the Maori." The destroying work has proceeded Avith equal rapidity during the periods in which the doomed race has quietly sue- 350 KEW ZEALAND WAEFAllE. Climbed to its destiny, and during those in which it has striven desperately to avert the evil, or, at any rate, to punish its authors. With one exception, there was not much resistance shown till 1861. The exception was in 1843 and the four following years. In 1843 Colonel Wakefield, having had a dispute about land with some chiefs, had determined to take the law into his own hands, and had accordingly gone into their district on the banks of the Wairau, in Nelson, with armed fol- lowers, and handcuffs and leg-irons for making captives of the chiefs. The natives resenting this procedure, he had fired upon them, and thus caused a small battle, ending in the defeat of the English intruders, with serious loss of life. " So manifestly illegal, unjust, and unwise were the martial array and the command to advance," said Lord Stanley (the present Earl of Perby), who was then Colonial Secre- tary, " that the authors of that order must be held responsible for all that followed in natural and immediate sequence upon it. The natives only exercised the rights of self-defence and of mutual protection against an imminent, overwhelming, and deadly danger. Eevolting to our feelings as Chris- tians, and to our opinions as members of a civilized State, as Avas the ultimate massacre, it is impossible to deny to our savage antagonists the benefits of the apology which is to ' urged in their behalf. They who provoke an indefensible warfare with barbarous tribes are hardly entitled to complain of the barbari- ties inseparable from such contests." ^ The effect of this catastrophe was most disastrous. ^ " Keport of Select Parliamentary Committee," 1844, pp. 172-174, THE WAn OF 1843 AND ITS ISSUE. 351 Exaggerated reports of it were spread over both the islands, and the irons seized from the English agcfres- sors were exhibited both as tokens of what they meant to do with the IMaoris, if they could, and as trophies of the prowess by which they had been, and might again and again be, successfully resisted. Tribes that had hitherto submitted quietly to British rule now gave visible signs of their discontent, and the tribes that had always been inimical, now had a ])Owerful argument in favour of violent opposition. An open feud between IMaoris and Pakehas began, never to be thoroughly healed. It found expression in several acts of hostility during the few vears ensuing. It extended so far north that, in March 1845, Kororarika was invaded and destroyed, the missionaries' quarter alone being spared. " The natives carried on their work of plun- der," said Bishop Selwyn, who witnessed it, "with perfect composure ; neither quarrelling among them- selves, nor resenting any attempt on the part of the English to recover portions of their property. Several of the people of the town landed in the midst of them, and were allowed to carry off such things as were not particularly desired by the spoilers."^ Here and elsewhere the Maoris showed remark- able moderation in their resistance of the colonists. Violent in their opposition to those who sought to dispossess them of what they reasonably regarded as their lawful property, they did no harm to friendly missionaries and traders, and even allowed them to mix freely with their armies, and use all the concilia- tory arts that tliey possessed. Praiseworthy modt;ra- 1 "Annals of the Diocese of New Zealand," p. 193. 352 NEW ZEALAND WAEFAKE. tion also was shown by Governor Fitzroy and his successor Governor Grey. They were forced to obtain from England military reinforcements for the pro- tection of the colonists, but they used them with a prudence which gave great offence to the more hot- headed and vindictive of tliese colonists. By help of friendly natives peace was made with many hostile tribes ; and those which still carried on the war were gradually, and without unnecessary severity, driven out of the fastnesses which they occupied as centres of guerilla warfare during 1845, 1846, and 1847. The result was a pacification which then and for fourteen years after was thought to be final. The natives confined themselves to their tribal wars, and these became rarer every year. The old grudges were not forgotten by them, but they found profit in intercourse with the colonists. "They are fond of agriculture," said Sir George Grey in 1849, "take great pleasure in cattle and horses, like the sea and form good sailors, are attaclied to Europeans and admire their customs and manners, are extremely ambitious of rising in civilization, and of becoming skilled in European arts. They are apt at learning, in many respects extremely conscientious and obser- vant of their word, are ambitious of honours, and are probably the most covetous race in the world. They are also agreeable in manners, and attachments of a lasting character readily spring up between them and the Europeans." Civilized ways took the place of bar- barism, and Christianity, which satisfied its teachers, superseded the mild polytheism or nature- worship which had formerly been dominant. Civilization, however, enervating a race which seemed only fit for THE MAORIS IN PEACE-TIME. 353 tlie wild habits of a barbarism which was not altogether barbarous, caused a more rapid dying out of the people than the sword would have been likely to effect, and close and impartial observers assure us that the Christianity was only superficial. The native population of New iMunster, or the Middle Island, never very numerous, is already nearly extinct, having dwindled from about 15,000 to about 2000, most of whom are old people, between 1848 and 1868. In New Ulster, or the Northern Island, the natives were estimated at 105,000 in 1848, and at 36,000 in 1868. But this residue seems to consist of the most vigorous and determined representatives of the race, men willing to gain all they can by Eng- lish intercourse, but resolved to receive from it nothing that is not gain. These are the people with wliom in recent times we have been brought into fierce con- flict, and among them, at any rate, Christianity has developed no spirit of meekness or self-abandonment. All that it has taught them is to cherish a love of independence; and for ways of asserting that inde- pendence they go back to the traditions of their fore- fathers, only substituting the Christian musket for the heathen tomahawk. Quaint illustration of the temper, at its best, in which the Maoris entered upon the present contest appears in the parable with which an old chief in Taranaki justified his participation in the rebellion, if it is to be called by that name, which was then beginning. Planting a long fern-stick in the ground to represent the Deity, he held two shorter ones in his hands, which, he said, represented the Maori and the Pakeha. "Before the Pakeha came," he z i 854 NEW ZEALAND WAEFARE. proceeded, " we thought ourselves the nearest to God, and standing nearly equal with Him;" and he planted the Maori stick close to the one representing the Godhead. "But when the Pakehas came, we thought that they stood higher than we did, that chey were next to the Godhead;" so he put the Pakeha Btick near to the tall one, and removed the Maori stick to a distance and sunk it deep in the earth. " But now we have learnt that the Maori and the Pakeha issue from one and the same source, from God ; that they both have good and evil qualities, and are alike before Him;" so he planted the Maori stick beside the Pakeha stick, at the same distance from the stick of the Godhead. " Pakeha and Maori are equal," he exclaimed. " They have equal rights, and it is proper that the Maoris should have their king, just as the Pakehas have theirs." The first idea of setting up a native king v/as wisely conceived. Its chief promoter was Wirimu Tamihana, better known as WiUiam King, a zealous Christian, and accounted one of the most diligent leaders of civilization and English influence ; and his purpose, or at any rate that avowed by him, was to bring the various tribes under the authority of some one who could put a stop to the disastrous tribal wars and help on the progress of his subjects, without offering any resistance to the recognised English authorities. " The river of blood was open," he said, " and I therefore sought for some plan to make it cease. I applied my thoughts to seek for some plan by which the Maori tribes should cleave together, so that the people might become one, like the Pakehas. I looked at your books, where Israel THE KING-MOVEMENT. 355 cried to have a king to themselves, to be a judge over them." The result was the setting up of a young man named Patotau, as King of the Maoris, in 1857. His authority was tolerated by the Govern- ment, and accepted by most of the native chiefs, and the consequence was a great lessening of the internal strife and rapid development of Maori strength to be applied either in good ways or in bad. Unfortunately bad ways soon opened up. In 18G0 a quarrel began at Waitara, in the province of Taranaki, owing to the sale of some land by a native, contrary to the wishes of his chief, Wirimu Tamihana. The settler's title was investigated and reported to be good, and the land was bought ; but when surveyors were sent to define its boundaries, they were stopped and driven back by the chief and his followers. They returned with a party of soldiers to protect them, and found the natives in armed possession of the land. A scuffle ensued; and soon it grew into a war. Taranaki was ravaged by the ^Maoris ; and the English troops were not strong enough to follow them into the mountain fastnesses to which they retired. Before a sufficient force could be brought from Auckland, the whole machinery of the Maori kingdom was applied to the fomenting of a general rebellion, and it spread over the whole northern island. " In 18G2," we are told, " the movement ])resented the following features : — an elected king, a very young man of no force of character, surrounded by a few ambitious chiefs, who formed a little mock court, and by a body-guard who kept him from all vulgar contact, and even from the inspection of Europeans, except on humi- 356 NEW ZEALAND WARFARE. Hating terms ; entirely powerless to enforce among his subjects the decisions of his magistrates; but with an army, if it might be called so, of 5000 to 10,000 followers, scattered over the country, but organized so that large numbers could be concen- trated on any one point on short notice ; large accu- mulated supplies of food, of arms, and ammunition ; a position in the centre of the island from which a descent could be made in a few hours on any of the European settlements ; the Queen's law set at utter defiance, her magistrates treated with supercilious contempt ; her writs torn to pieces and trampled under foot ; Europeans who had married native women driven out of the King's districts, while their wives and children were taken from them, unless they would recognise and pay an annual tribute to the King." Perhaps there was fault on the part of the Colonial Government in insisting on the obnoxious land-pur- chase in Waitara in 1860. Perhaps the King-move- ment had all along been a mere device for preparing a formidable rebellion, and ought not to have been tolerated at starting. But on both these points it is not easy to attach reasonable blame to the local authorities. All that is clear is that the colonists who had long thought their position secure, found themselves surprised by a powerful organization which they had no means of at once putting down. They were forced to make an ignominious truce with the insurgents in 1862, which was followed by a full and insolent outburst of war in 1863. The colonists had feebly prepared for meeting ^ Fox, " The "War in New Zealand," pp. 30, 31. FIGHTING BETWEEN 1862 AND 1864. 357 future dangers. The Maoris needed no preparation. In April 18G3 they renewed their ravages in Tara- naki. In May they threatened to invade Auckland. Their march was interrupted by General Cameron, at the head of a small body of troops, who bravely repulsed them in the open field and hunted them through the "Waikato district, but was powerless in his attempts to follow them to their hiding-places and bring them into subjection. Tims three-quarters of a year were spent. The general character of the strife is shown in the closing episode of the campaign in Waikato. " On the 30th of March 18G4," we are told, " Brigadier- General Carey was informed that the natives were entrenching themselves at Orakau, about three miles from his quarters. After reconnoitring their position he returned, and, collecting a force of about a thousand men, with three guns, he made a night march, appearing before the pah at early day- light, and having so arranged the arrival of his detachments from different posts that from the first they surrounded the enemy's position, and rendered escape impossible. The pah proved to be a place of great strength, with the usual ditches and parapets of more than usual depth and height, surrounded by a strong post and rail fence, and outlying connected rifle-pits. At first General Carey attempted to storm the works and take them by a rush ; but, after three assaults, he wisely desisted and determined to' ap- proach the defences by sap. The number of natives inside is supposed to have been about three hundred, commanded by Eewi, the great fighting general of the King-party. During the afternoon a reinforcement of a hundred and fifty or two hundred rebels appeared 358 NEW ZEALAND WARFARE. in sight, evidently intending to relieve the place. They advanced to the edge of a Lush, about nine hundred yards in the rear of our outposts, but there they stopped and commenced firing harmless volleys, at the same time endeavouring to encourage their friends by dancing the war-dance and yelling. In the meantime reinforcements kept arriving on our side, which brought up our number to over two thousand men, who were so disposed that the escape of the beleagured Maoris seemed to be absolutely impossible. All that day and the following night heavy firing was kept up on both sides. Not less than 40,000 rounds of cartridges were served out to our troops. By the morning of the 2d of April the sap was pushed close up to the works, and hand-grenades were thrown into the entrenchments. The Armstrong gans were brought into play, silencing the fire of the enemy to a great extent. General Cameron now arrived on the ground, but did not interfere with the direction of operations. As it was well known, how- ever, that there were many women and children inside, he sent an interpreter to tell them that if they would surrender their lives would be spared. Their reply was, ' This is the word of the Maori ; we will figlit for ever, and ever, and ever.' They were then urged to send out the women and children. They answered, ' The women will fight as well as we.' Then the firing recommenced. Our troops were now getting desperate. Three attempts at a hand-to-hand encounter were made, but without success. It was now four o'clock of the hird day, during which the Maoris had had no food \ ■ a few raw potatoes, and not a drop of water j while *^^he shower of grape, MAOEI SOLDIERSHIP. 359 hand-grenades, and rifle-balls, poured with more and more effect into their entrenchments. Suddenly, on that side of the works which was supposed to he closely invested by a double line of the 40th Eegi- ment, the whole Maori force was seen to be escaping. Before they knew that the Maoris were out, it is said, they jumped over their heads, and broke away for a neighbouring swamp and scrub. Here they might all have escaped in a body but for a small corps of cavalry and artillery, which got a-head and met them just as they emerged from the swamp and scrub, and did great execution. The natives afterwards ac- knowledged a loss of two hundred. Our casualties amounted to sixteen killed and fifty- two wounded."^ Of that sort was nearly all the fighting; a vast expenditure of energy being required to bring about a very small result, which lift the enemy almost as strong as ever. There were more battles — one of them, at ' Te Kanga, being more than ordinarily successful — in 1863 ; and in 1864 there was a lull in the contest. In 1865 it was revived ; but so formidable was the action of the English troops, aided by friendly natives, tliat, before the year closed, peace was supposed to be restored. The peace, however, was only followed by a course of guerilla warfare, maintained by about a thousand rebels, by which the colony is still afflicted. It will probably continue till the rebel portion of the natives, if not the whole body of them, is exterminated. In the second half of 1868 and the first half of 1869 it is reckoned that about two hundred and sixty insur- gents, out of something over a thousand in arms, 1 Fox, pp. 97-102. iial 360 NEW ZEALAND WARFARE. were put to death. The losses are supplied, in part at any rate, by fresh recruits from the neutral or secretly disaffected tribes ; but as theu* supply of strong men is limited, and, by reason of the gradual dying out of the natives through causes with which the war has nothing to do, the strife can hardly last for many years longer ; though the increasing atro- city of disposition shown by those who carry on the fight makes it likely that these final years of conflict will be attended by horrors wholly dis- proportion ed to the extent of the war and the relativ^e strength of the combatants. A dying outburst of savage fury and fanaticism appears in tlie latest development of the King-move- ment, known as the Pai-Marire or Hau-Hau supersti- tion. It began in March 1864, when Captain Lloyd of the 5 7th Eegiment, with a detachment of a hundred men, was defeated on the Taranaki hills, he and eight others being killed. " The rebels drank the blood of those who fell," we are told, " and cut off their heads, burying for the time the heads and bodies in separate places. A few days afterwards, according to the native account, the angel Gabriel appeared to those who had partaken of the blood, and, by the medium of Captain Lloyd's spirit, ordered that his head should be exhumed, cured in their own way, and taken throughout tlie length and breadth of New Zealand, and that from henceforth this head should be the medium of man's communi- cation with Jehovah. Tliese injunctions were care- fully obeyed, and immediately the head was taken up it communicated in the most solemn way the tenets of this new religion, namely : — The followers THE HAn-HAi; SUPERSTITION. 361 shall be called ' Pai JVIarire.' The angel Gabriel, with his legions, will protect them from their enemies. The Virgin ]\Iary will constantly be present with them. The religion of England, as taught by tlie Scriptures, is false. The Scriptures must all be burnt. All days are alike sacred, and no notice must be taken of the Christian Sabbath. ^Men and women miist live together promiscuously, so that their children may be as the sand of the sea-shore for multitude. The priests have superhuman power, and can obtain for their followers complete victory by uttering vigorously the word ' Hau.' The people who adopt this religion will shortly drive the whole European population out of New Zealand. This is only prevented now by the head not having com- pleted its circuit of the whole land. Legions of angels await the bidding of the priests to aid the Maoris in exterminating the Europeans. Immedi- ately the Europeans are destroyed and driven away, men will be sent from heaven to teach the Maoris aU the arts and sciences now known by Europeans." " These were the first developments of the Pai Marire or Hau-Hau fanaticism. Its emissaries were sent into every part of the islands, and their creed, which was framed on the convenient principle of embodying something from most other creeds, spread like wild-fire ; its votaries apparently adding new articles to it to meet the growing furor of their disciples. A large infusion of Judaism, some leading features of Mormonism, a little mesmerism, a touch of spiritualism, occasional ventriloquism, and a large amount of cannibalism, are the characteristic features which it exhibits. Its rites are bloody, sensual, foul, 362 NEW ZEALAND AVARFARE. and devilish ; the least reprehensible and most orderly consisting in running round a pole stuck in the ground, howUng and xittering gibberish, till cata- lepsy prostrates the worshippers, who sometimes he senseless on the ground for hours. Their bitterest hatred and most refined cruelties are reserved for the missionaries, who are accused of robbing them of their lands by tribes which never sold, gave away, or were deprived of an acre." ^ It may be hoped that the very viciousness of this new rehgion will cause its ready abandonment by all but the most degraded of the Maoris ; and that then, if a wise pohcy be adopted by the colonial authorities, their subjection to English rule, under which they can be quietly left to die out, will be made easy. That the Maoris should speedily die out is now the best hope for New Zealand. Foolish and dis- honourable conduct pursued towards them in former times has rendered their existence as an indepen- dent and prosperous section of the population now impossible ; and perhaps their wasting away is in great measure due to causes for which neither colonists nor missionaries are in any way respon- sible. In the rocky peninsula which forms the extreme north of the northern island there are still some 9000 or 10,000 natives who live apart both from their own kinsmen and from the English com- munity, save in the carrjdng on of a humble trade with then, and for the peaceable progress of these » Fox, pp. 127-129, 139, 140. Much information atout Hau- Hauism, Kingism, and the whole condition of the Maoris, is con- tained in a bulky New Zealand Blue-Book (pait i.) which has been published wliile this volume is going to press. THE ISSUE OF TUE STRIFE. 363 tliere is the best chance, though only a poor one. Of the 28,000 said to be in the interior of the northern island, only 3000 or fewer are in open hostility to the colonists; but the sympathy that binds them all together, and renders them now obnoxious to Englishmen, must hasten on their decay. Not till they have disappeared will New Zealand be able to enter without hindrance upon the bright future in store for it. CHAPTER XXIX. ENGLISH AUSTKALASIA. THE RELATIVE ADVANTAGES OF OUR AUSTRALASIAN COLONIES — WESTERN AUSTRALIA — QUEENSLAND — NEW SOUTH WALES — VICTORIA — SOUTH AUSTRALIA — TASMANIA — NEW ZEALAND. "[AEDLY more than eighty years have passed since, in May 1787, the first cargo of con- victs, with their keepers and attendants, was sent out from England to hecrsons, and in Natal, about twenty-four — these being cliiefly Kaffirs; in Victoria there are only seven ; in Tasmania only four ; in New Zealand, less than two ; and in New South Wales, less than one; while, in South Aus- tralia, there are two and a half square miles, in Western Australia three, in Queensland eighteen, for each person. In all our colonies there are not more than five million English residents. It has been estimated that they could easily maintain a hundred million, when they would still be only one- fourth as populous as Great Britain now is. Any other than a very gradual approximation to that vast increase of population, of course, were it at all possible, would be altogether inexpedient. AVaste lands cannot be at once rendered fit for use by any but a very scanty population. They have to be cultivated and improved step by step. Western Australia does not furnish the only painful illustra- tion on record of the ill effects of too hasty effort in the way of colonization; but in nearly all our colonies there is ample room, if not pressing need, for a far greater number of colonists than they possess ; and this being so, it is surely strange that there should not be a far larger migration to them than now occurs from the over-crowded population of the mother-country. Nearly every calling in Great Britain, from the lowest to the highest,' is over- manned. About £7,000,000 are annually spent by the nation, besides all the outlay of private charity, in the relief of the million or more poor persona 378 THE END OF THE STOUY. who, unable to maintain themselves, or hindered from doing so ^y their own misdeeds, are thus a heavy Lurtlieu on the other millions, who, for the most part, . ..d ii, very difficult to pro\ ide themselves Avith tlie neeessaric"! of life, and the rapid growth of population makes the burthen and the difficulty greater eveiy year. I'hilanthropists and statesmen, no less than the sufferers themselves, are seriously at fault for not duly considering the value of our colonies for what Lord Bacon called " the double commodity in the avoidance of people here, and the making use of them there." If the administrators of our poor laws, and the dispensers of private charity understood their duty they would do vastly more than they have hitherto done in lessening the load of domestic pauperism by means of emigration to colo- nies in which there is room and need for millions of fresh settlers. Useless paupers, however, would be as useless in the colonies as they are at home. JMen and women who have been rendered apathetic and witless by the degradation of poverty have small prospect of advancement in regions where everything depends upon capacity for hard work and readiness in using that capacity in any labour that circumstances require. And the same remark applies, with equal force, to those other paupers of a higlier social grade, who, by training or natural deficiency, are unable to maintain their ground in the struggle for independence that arises in every sphere of occu- pation, from those of the field-labourer and the artizan to those of the merchant and the candidate for professional employment. In the colonies, even OUR EMIGRATIOX-nELPS. 379 more tuan at home, iiono but those who have power and will to work can expcc t to make progress. lUit as every calling is overcrowded with snch, it is eminently desirable, both in their own interests and in those of the nation, that tlieir ranks should bo thinned and the colonies shoidd be aided by the transference of some of them to new scenes of enter- prise. England can spare a goodly immber of them, and is constantly breeding more than she herself can give work to, and the colonies reipure all they can receive, for generations to come, of immigrants who will have to toil as manfully as at home, but who may fairly expect far richer gains than they coultl expect from their toil at home, and wlio may derive an additional satisfaction in their good fortune by knowing that their gains involve no loss to their neighbours. Each colony has its special needs and its special facilities for advancement ; but in nearly all — in all but the few that are already well supplied with an enterprising population — there is room for hard-work- ing settlers of every grade. In the great emigration- fields of British North America and Australia, how- ever, there is most, and for the present boundless, room for farm labourers and their employers, and for artizans and their directors. Wliere vast tracts of land wait only to be tilled, and to have their useless vegetation replaced by wholesome cultivation, where new roads and canals have to be constructed, and where, as the produce is multiplied, the towns require fresh building of houses, increased development of manufactories and augmentation of all the resources for rendering available and transmitting to near and 380 THE END OF THE STORY. distant marts the fruit of agricultural and other labours, it is evident that all who can supply these demands will Le most welcome and will profit most by their enterprise. That enterprise, if rightly directed, cannot fail of success. It must benefit the individuals who engage in it, and confer equal benefit on the countries that receive them and the country that sends them forth. The noblest outcome of English colonization appears in the vast empire of the United States of America. But offspring as noble are now growing, and whether they continue to own formal allegiance to their mother-country, or in the end become inde- pendent nationalities, they cannot fail to be of in- estimable advantage to the little island that gave them birth. And no political divergence can break the bonds of Anglo-Saxon friendship, or retard the progress of that best endowed race of men which, emerging from its English cradle, promises to spread the civilizing influences of its birth over the fairest ard broadest portions of both hemispheres, and, in spite any turmoils that may be incident to its deve- lopment, to continue its good work "Till the war-drum tlirobs no longer, and tlie battle-flags are furl'd In tlie Parliament of man, the Federation of the world." APPENDIX. T. — AREA AND POPULATION OF THE BEITISII ' COLONIAL POSSESSIONS. The following table is based upon the latest returns. In some cases, where precise surveys and reckonings have not been made, the figures are only approximate. The last column shows the date of each ct nf us or estimate of the population. AREA. POPUL.iTION. Sq. Miles. Hales. Females. Total. D.VTE. West Isdies. Jamaica, C,400 213,521 227,743 441,204 1861 Turk's Islands, 2,128 2,244 4,372 1801 Bahamas, . 2',921 17,406 17.821 35,287 1861 'Antifiua, 183 17,060 20,065 37,125 1861 •s» Dominica, . . 291 11,830 13,235 25,065 1860 21, St Clu'istopher's, 103 11,437 13,003 24,440 1861 ill Montserrat, . 47 3,447 4,198 7,645 1803 % CO Nevis, 50 4,526 5,290 9,822 1801 Virgin Islands, 57 2,907 8,144 6,051 1861 ■g . /Barbados, lOG 70,799 81,928 152,727 1861 ^■S Grenada, 133 15,413 10,487 31,900 1861 •S § i St Vincent, 131 15,005 16,750 31,755 1S61 .5 -3 1 Tobago, . 97 7,433 7,977 15,410 1S61 i^ " I^St Lucia, 250 13,962 14,173 28,135 1803 Trinidad, . 1,754 46,074 38,304 84,438 1801 British Guiana, 70,000 79,644 68,382 148,026 1861 Honduras, 13,500 13,789 11,846 25,035 1861 North America. C-^HSern,' ! ! l} 210,020 i •• 1,726,080) 1,257,480 1" 1866 Nova Scotia and Cape Breton, 18,671 165',584 165,273 330,857 1861 New Brunswicl?, 27,037 129,948 1122,099 202,047 1861 Prince Edward Island, . 2,173 40,880 39,977 80,857 1861 Newfoundland, 40,200 04,268 58,370 122,038 1857 Bermuda, .... 24 4,902 6,549 11,451 1861 British CoIun.bia{S^t,^i„^^i|. 200,000 ( 8,000 360 8,300) '30,000 to } 40,000 ) 1863 Vanco«verIslaud{™tf^i„,i} 16,000 {:: 8,000 } 10,000 ) 1863 33 1 382 Ari'ENDIX. AiiEA AND Population of the Bhitish Colonial Possessions — continued. AREA. POPCLATIOK. DATE. Sq. Mlle». Mali'«. Females. Tot.il. Afiuca. Cum / ^''"t'^' I • 104,931 290,900 275,192 ( 187,439 1 ( 378,719) 1805 (\Vliit<', . . . ) 10,145 1 9,272 ,-,930 17,202 ^ 232,837 J Natiil \ Ciilonn'il, iiichiiling J- ( 0000 Coolio.s, . ) 113,034 119,203 1809 O.inibia, 21 3,985 2,954 6,939 ISOl Sierra liCono, .... 4(iS 21,203 20,588 41,791 1803 Ould Coast 0,000 .. 151,340 1858 I«W>s, 10', 70S 15,837 82,545 18113 HtUeleno, .... ■■47 3,774 3,080 0,800 1801 British India. Whito ) Native ) 1.004,010 {:: .. 125,9451 H3,UO(J,(JU0 1 1801 EARTnnN Colonies. cey'-IKc..: : :} 24,700 1 7,R3S 1,107,4110 0,470 l.W.MCO 14,3141 2,2II9,0J0 1 1SC3 Mauritius 70S 2or,,iio 107,352 313,402 ISOl S"yclii'lli'a & otlicr dependcneies, 4,803 4,lii2 0.055 1801 IIoiiK Koug, .... "29 84.797 32,074 117,471 1807 Labuuii, 45 2,703 043 3,340 1S03 Australasia. New Soutli Wales, . 303,437 227,190 184,192 411,388 1805 Queensland, .... 078,005 00,L'15 3;i,o,i7 99,312 ISOS \ ietoria 8(),S75 380,234 2'.n;,3:)0 070,590 ISi'.S Soutli Australia, 383,323 89,091 82,8i;9 172,800 1807 Western Australia, . 078,000 14,539 8,194 22,733 1808 Tasmania, .... 2li,215 98,4,54 1807 New Zealand, .... 100,200 13l!920 80,739 218,008 1S07 „ ,, Natives, 31,007 24,303 55,970 1804 Auckland Islands, . • • .. 151 1851 Other Possessions. Malta, exclusive of Troups, etc.. 115 0S.717 71,125 139,842 ISOl Gibraltar I'i 7,139 8,323 15,402 ls.;3 llelij!lo room for conij)etent settlers who can promote their trade and j,'ive an inijietus, lienetieial to themselves as well as to others, to other appliances for aiding the resiileiits in augmenting tho resources of the various countries. In llie development of the manufacturing art -1, in constructing railways and other means of transit, enteijirising merchants, engineers, and the like, have shown h(»w much can be d(jne in these colonics, and I'sjiecially in India. Here, too, there is room for proi'essi(jiiaI men, whether lawyers or doctors ; Init not for the great majoritj' of those who may seek to advance thems(dves by emigration. The same may be said of our West Indian colonies. Most of them are yet sparsely peopled ; but experience seems to ])rove that in them manual labour can best be done, if not by the resident negroes, by emigrants from India, who are better adapted than Englishmen for tlic ^Vest Indian climate. No such objection applies to the United Stales, to which the great majority of British emigrants go in search of prosperity that they cannot hope to attain at liome ; or t'^ our own vast colonies in the more northern section of the American continent. "The following remarks," it is said in the "Colonization Circular" referred to, " of the late Jlr Buchanan, Chief iVgent for Immigration at Quebec, are stated in a communication from the Deiuity Minister of Agriculture, dated 27th of March 1869, to be still applicable : — 'The classes which may Le recommended to emigrate to Canada are (1) persons with capital seeking investment ; (2) produce fanners ; (3) agricul- tural labourers ; (4) male and female servants ; and (5) boys and girls over 15 years of age. Families with fixed incomes will find in Canada, with much less difficulty tlian in the mother-country, a suitable house, good society, and every facility for educating and starting their children in life. Persons possessing small capitals (say from £200 to ^500) are advised to purchase or rent a farm with some little improve- ment upon it, instead of going into the bush at once. Parties desirous of investing may obtain from se\'en to eight per cent, for their money on mortgage with perfect security.' A small capitalist, Mr Buchanan adds, would act 'wisely, if, instead of buying land before becoming ac(piainted with its character and the kind of labour re([uired in a new country, he were to place his money in the Savings' Bank, take lodgings for his family in some neiglibourhood affording a good prospect of employment, and work at wages for a year or so, thus gaining the knowledge and experience necessaiy to realize indepeu- 384 APPENDIX. dence. Such a course is not deemed degrading in Canada, and is sure to result in ultimate good. Let it be borne in mind that all persons belonging to Canada, whether they be possessed of ^100 or £1000, must fail unless they come determined to labour themselves ; and it may be asserted without fear of contradiction, that the family who pursues this plan will, at the end of a few years, be far in advance of him, no matter what his capital may be, who has not taken to the axe and the hoe. Improved farms may be purchased at from five dollars to fifty dollars per acre, according to situation and extent of improvement ; or rented, with or without the option of j)ut- chase, at from one dollar to four dollars per acre. The emigrant should not invest all his capital in land, but reserve sufticient to enable him to stock and work it. The classes who should be warned against emigration are clerks, shojmien, or persons having no particular trade or calling, and iinaccustomed to manual labour. To emigrants of this class Canada all'ords but little encouragement at present. With regard to females above the grade of domestic servants, Mr Buchanan adheres to his statements and opinions exjiressed in a special report, dated the 16th May 18G2, that there exists but a veiy limited demand for that class of women, and that the present introduc- tion of such a class into Canada would be attended with con- sequences far from advantageous.'" Of the same sort is the advice from competent authorities in the other provinces of the Canadian dominion. " There will be a large demand for labour," says the Immigration Agent of New Brunswick, in a report dated the 22d of February 1869, "in the coming season. Already there have been portions of the Great IntercolonialRailway placed under contract, and labourers and mechanics will consequently be in great demand. There has been a falling off in shipbuilding, but all other branches of industry are in a healthy state. Farming was carried on with great advantage last year ; and the prospect for those willing to undertake the cultivation of the soil promises to be remune- rative. One hundred acres of Government land can be had for 20 dols. currency ; or it can be paid for by labour on the roads, say 10 dols. for three successive years ; then the land is granted by deed to the settler and his heirs. Agricultural labourers, dairywomen, female servants, and boys and girls over fifteen years of age, will find ready and remunerative employment. To these classes New Brunswick offers great inducements. With land so easily procured, and remunera- tive wages for all kinds of labour, the country offers great inducements to all who are disposed to labour for a living. The many thousands of emigrants who landed in the country but a few yeai-s ago, and who have become the o-\vners of pro- NOKTU AMERICAN EMIGRATION-FIELDS. 385 diictive farms, and are living in comfort, and in many cases in alliiience, should induce those who are intending to emigrate, to look favourably upon our young and growing country." In Nova Scotia, too, it was said by the Deputy Provincial Secretary of the colony in December 1868, " a good class of farmers who have sufficient means wherewith to purchase small farms, already under cultivation, would do well in the western parts of the province. Fruit-growers in particular could make money ; but this is no place for pau2)ers. What is required is more capital and industry, and there is a good opening for the expenditure and employment of both." In Newfoundland there are fewer attractions for emigrants. " This colony," according to the report of its Colonial Secretary in October 1866 — and his remarks are still applicable — " has veiy little demand for labour, except during the fishing season, wliich may be said to last from May till October. During that period every able-bodied ojierative is fully em- ployed, and it is upon the success or otherwise of that fisheiy that the condition of the people during the ensuing winter in a great measure depends, as, unfortunately, there is very little to be had by the people in the shape of employment during the winter, there being but very few manufactories or other sources of employment at those times when the fishery cannot be prosecuted. The seal-fishery in March employs a large number of the young and able-bodied men of the colony for a period ranging from one month to six weeks and two months. The taking of herring and salmon commences earlier than the cod-fishery, which cannot be said to be fully engaged in earlier than in the month of June. Agriculture is progressively increasing." More auspicious in climate than some of our settlements in North America and its eastern islands, and equal in resources to the best of them, are the younger colonies of British Columbia and Vancouver's Island, now united under one Government, in the far west. "The climate of Vancouver Island," we are told, " is excellent, and has been compared to the climate of the milder parts of England or to that in the south of France. Indeed, it is said to be preferable to that of England, as it has more fine steady weather, is far less changeable, and on the whole milder. The days in summer are warm, but not oppressive, and free from glare : the evenings are cool, with a gentle sea breeze. Heavy rains generally fall in December or January. The winter is a little cold, but not severe. There are occasional frosts and falls of snow, but they rarely last long." " British Columbia, also, may compare favourably with most colonies, more particularlv with those on the American 2'r 386 APPENDIX. continent in similar latitudes. It is remarkably healthy hoth in summer and winter, there heing nothing like malaria or ague eithe- in the hottest summer weather or the dampest localities. On the western and eastern side of the Cascade Range the climate is quite different. The western is heavily timbered, and subject to heavy rains in spring and autumn ; while on the eastern side the country consists of rolling grassy plains, lightly timbered, the summer heat more intense, the rain light. Tomatoes and melons ripen readily in the open air, and the winters are comparatively mild." Both the island and the mainland wait to be made use of by enterprising colonists, whose enterprise takes healthier shape than in search for gold. " The population of British Columbia is chiefly migratory, consisting of mining adventurers from California and other parts of the world, and including con- siderable numbers of Chinese. The settled white population may be estimated at about 8000. Settlement is however rapidly in jjrogress, and farms are being taken up and culti- vated throughout the colony. In addition to its gold mines, which are as yet the principal source of wealth to the colony, the natural resources of the country have thus been summed up in evidence given before the House of Commons : ' Its minerals are most valuable ; its timber the finest in the world for marine purposes ; it abounds with bituminous coal well fitted for the generation of steam ; from Thomson's River and Colville Districts to the Rocky Mountains, and from the 49th parallel, some 350 miles north, a more beautiful country does not exist.' It is in every way suitable for colonization. The soil has proved extremely fertile, and cereals have been every- where raised to great advantage. Grazing and dairy farming, though carried on to a limited extent, have been highly pro- fitable and successful. During the year 1865 a valuable silver lead mine was discovered in the Shuswap District, at a place called Cherry Creek. The ore on assay has been found to yield as much as 2000 ounces of silver to the ton. Preparations are being made to mine here on an extensive scale, and it is generally supposed that the silver mines of the country will prove one of its most valuable sources of wealth and pro- Bperity, Silver has been fou^nd in various other parts of the country. Excellent anthracite coal has also been discovered on Queen Charlotte's Island, and great expectations have been formed of the result of the labours of the company who have undertaken to work the mine." The West African colonies, by reason of their unhealthy climate, are of no value as emigration-fields. All the pro- gress that can be made by them will be by wise education and AFRICAN AND AUSTRALIAN EMIGEATION-FIELDS. 387 employment of their ovm natives, and of tliose negroes who go to it from the United States and the West Indies. Nor does Cape Colony at present invite fresh settlers. The climate is healthy and the soil is various and fertile ; but those already resident in it seem suificient for all the work that has to he done, until fresh enterpiise opens up new fields of labour. And from Natal, yet more favourable in climate and soil than the Cape, we have the same report. " There is no demand for artizans," WTote tlie Colonial Secretary in February 1809, " or field and house servants, at the present time. All British field and domestic servants have to compete in the labour market with the numerous coloured inhabitants working for small wages. Small British farmers, who have been accustomed to labour themselves, and have a little cajiital, might find it profitable to emigrate to Natal, where they can purchase or rent small farms near markets, and live at little cost ^or necessaries." Of that latter sort are the emigrants for whom there is most room in all our leading colonies, but hardly anywhere as much as in Australia. Farmers and farm-labourers, mechanics and engineers, are the men most needed by all the Australian colo- nies. With slight variations, arising from the spei-ial conditions of the various settlements, the reports of the immigration agents in each are to the same effect. " To Queensland, the youngest of them," says the Executive Council of the Colonial Government, " as a general rule, and with the exception of a few professional men, only two classes of men should emigrate, viz. : (1) Capitalists large or small ; (2) Labourers, that is, men or women accustomed to work with their hands. All others will be doomed, not only to abnost certain disappointment, but also to severe hardships." In Victoria, it was reported in February 18(59, " the provi- sions of the Land Act, by which the land within certain areas has been thrown open to lease, and which has been extensi\cly taken up, have tended very considerably to enhance the demand for agricultural labour, and will year by year increase it, as persons whose labour has been liitherto available become pro- prietors themselves, and employers of labour. At present, in many parts of the colony, this description of labour is said to be wanted. It is advisable for persons desirous of emigrating to any of the Australian colonies, to bear in mind that men without or with small families are likely to find employment soonest, and are the most sought after. Clerks, shopmen, and men not accustomed to manual labour are not advised to emigrate, the supply being greater than the demand, especially as so many colonial-bom youths fit for these occupations are 388 APPENDIX. now competing for employments of this description. The emigration of needlewomen, liousekeepers, governesses, and others of the class who have not been accvtstomed to domestic service, is not encouraged. The description of female emigrants most required are general servants, who can cook and wash, etc., housemaids, good cooks, and industrious strong girls who can cook a little, milk a cow, make butter, and are accus- tomed to other farm and dairy work." From New South Wales and South Australia, from Tasmania and New Zealand, similar advice is sent home. In Tasmania, " female domestic servants who thoroughly understand house- hold work are in constant demand, at wages varying from ^20 to £.30 per year. Agricultural labourers always find employ- ment at high wages, with rations of meat, flour, tea, and sugar, and dwellings rent free. Tailors, shoemakers, and brassfounders are, of artizan labourers the most in demand at present.'" In New Zealand, " good female domestic servants are Avanted throughout the colony. Young men of no particular profession and without capital fail to procure employment; and those brought up to mercantile jnirsuits are equally unsuccessful." Concerning Queensland, the Australasian colony in which there is most room for the enterprise of settlers able to l)uy or lease land and stock it for agriculture or pasturage, the follow- ing observations are especially worth extracting : — " The colony possesses numerous harbours, of which Moreton Bay is the principal. Anchorage may be found in almost any part of it, under shelter of the numerous shoals. It is about forty miles long north and south by seventeen miles wide, and receives the waters of five navigable rivers, viz., the Arrowsmith, the Logan, the Brisbane, the Pine, and the Cabulture. Most of these rivers have, however, a bar entrance. Besi5 ■« s B Ch M M n ^ ti g ^ »? o ■§ H ^ t4 0, 5 ^ ■6 -I f1 - S-'^'^ i- <£>' (M CO" 3g 3 ^^3 O 3 O 3 ^•^ 3 3 CD •-= a 09 a .2 • * • • ' ' • •-& U 1 *i ^ o o n- D9 fi 01 1 ^^" Tl ti 1 § 1 3 1 1 o s •3 1 i s s s PI 2 1 42 1 M n n u o « P o )-:) p.1 OQ xi H I '3 to _f § = tp 3 Al'I'ENDLX. in. — OUR COLONIAL GOLD-Fi^LLi. Tlie following' information is taken chiefly from the Culonizatlon Circular for 1809 : — 1. Victoria. — About one-third of the colony, or an area of nearly 30,000 square miles, is supposed to have gold under its Burface ; hut of this area only a tenth has, as yet, been laid open to miners, and less than one three-hundredth, or about 600,000 acres, has been actually opened up. Many of the parts require more elaborate meehauical working and more scientific skill than are possessed by ordinary gold-seekers. The whole colony, with the excqition of the immediate vicinity of Melbourne, is divided, for miniug purposes, into seven princii)al districts. " Miners' Rights," or licences, are granted for any nundjer of years not exceeding fifteen, at the rate cf £') a year, and about 000,000 have hitherto been issued. " In each of the seven mining districts there in a legislative body termed a Mining Board. These boards are empowered to make bye-laws, aj'plicable to the district gene- rally, with res])ect to mining atiairs and occujiation under business licences. Each of these boards consists of ten mem- bers, four of whom retire from each board annually by rota- tion, when their places are supplied by the election of four others to fill the vacancies, or by the re-election of the retiring members. The members of the mining boards are elected by ballot, and each male holder of a ' Miner's Right' is entitled to a vote. Each district has its separate Court of Mines, which is a Court of Record, and is presided over by a District Judge. One of the judges of the Supreme Court is appointed to act as Chief Judge of the Court of Mines. The Courts of Mines have jurisdiction to hear and determine all suits cognizable by a court of law or by a court of equity which may arise concern- ing any Crown land claimed under ' Miners' Rights,' leases, or licences, mining partnerships, boundaries, contribution to calls, and generally all questions and disputes which may arise between miners in relation to mining upon Crown lands. The duties of the wardens, of whom one is in each division, are mostly of a judicial character, and they generally act as police magistrates. As wardens they hear and determine all suits cognizable by a court of law, which the Courts of Mines are empowered to hear, and they may proceed summarily to settle OUR COLONIAL G0LD-FIKLD3, 397 any dispute conrornin,!:? any Crown Innil, sliare, nr intiTcst in a ly claim. Tlie mint's of the colony an; idaccd nudcr a Mininj; Department, whose head has a seat in the LeyLslativo Assemlily and in the Cabinet." The fcdlowin;,' tahic shows the divisions and population, in DeceniLer 18G7, of the Victoria gold-tields ; — Mini.no Districts. .VUuvial Miners. Quartz Jliners. Total. i :3 i en a Oj' 1 E •i 3 tj 5 o Diillarat Distric't, intluding Bal- lariit, Boniiipm;;, Sm}tlii-'s Gold Mines of California, 137; of British Columbia, 137, 151, i:>-J, 386, 400; of Cape Colony, 173; of New South Wales. 277. 27K, 290-292, 398, 399 ; of Victoria, 278-282 285-287, 390-398 : of Queensland, 389, 399 ; of New Zealand, 347, 399. Graham, Colonel, in Capo Colony, 1C2-1G5. Graham's Town, KJo, 1(!6, 173. Gregory, A., the Australian explorer, 320, Grey, Sir George, governor of South Australia, 204, 2G5; his explora- tions in West Australia, 308 ; his services as governor of New Zealand, 345, 352. Guiana, 57, .'8. Habitan's, the French, in Canada, 110-113, 116. Hamilton, Canada West, 125, 126, 147. Hargreaves, Mr E. H., gold discovered in Australia by. 278. Hawkins, Sir John, his slave-trading expeditions to the Afrioau coast and the West Indies, 16-18. Head, Sir Francis, governor of Canada, 122. Helpman, Lieutenant, the Australian explorer, 315. Henty, Thomas, his early settlement in Victoria, 244, 245. Heredia, Godinho de, his discovery of Australia, 198. Hindmarsh, Sir John, first governor of South Australia, 262, 263. Hobarton, Tasmania, 234. Hobson, Captain, the first governor of New Zealand, 341-343, 345. Hong Kong, 192, 193. Hottentots, the, 156-161, 166, 167, 170. Hovell, the Australian explorer, 306. Howiti Alfred William, the Australian explorer, 320. Hudson, Henry, in America, 69, 128. Hudson's Bay Company, the, 128-137. Hudson's Bay Temtory, the, its extent and character, 128, 129, 148; early settlements and trade in, 131-134, 144; its Indian natives. 135, 136 ; its surrender to Canada, 138. Hughes, Captain, in South Australia, 271, 272. Hume, Hamilton, the Australian explorer, 306. India, British, its history and commerce, 7, 184-186; its value as iin emigration-field, 376, 383. Indians, North American, their early relations with the French and English, 84, 87-89, 92. Ipswich, Queensland, 295. Jamaica, discovered by Columbus in 1494, 29 ; his residence in it, 29, 30 ; captured and almost depopulated by the Spaniards, 30, 31 ; first visited by the English (1605), 31 ; captured for Crom- well by General Venables (1655), 31, 36; its first English colonists, 31 ; its connection with the Buccaneers, 32-40, 44 ; its progress in the 17th century, 39, 40 ; its losses by earth- quake and hurricane in 1692 and 1693, 40-42 ; its commercial importance in 1728, 43, 44; its progress in the 18th century, 40(5 INDEX. .J;iv ii. 45 ; itfl condition as a slave colony, 45-51, 65 ; the insurrec- tion of 17(iO. 47, 49; the Consolidated Slavo Act of 1792, 49; ttio insurrection of 1832, 50, 51 ; the abolition of slavery in 1 H.'54, 52 ; its natural beauties and resources, CO, 03 ; its degrada- tion and its causes, (J4-fiG ; the chances of its amelioration, CG, 67. , John, " the younger," his voyage in search of Cathay, 4. Kaffirs, the, in South Africa. 161-173, 175-180. Kapunda Copper Mines, South Australia. 265, 266. ., King, Captain, his account of South Australia, 260. Kingston, Canada, 146, 147. Kingston, Jamaica, 64, 65. Kirk, Sir David, his share in colonizing Newfoundland, 70 ; his invasion of Canada, 86. Kororarika, New Zealand, 338, 344, 351. Labrador. ,5, 6, 139. Labuau, 197. Lachlan River, Australia, 217, 306. LagoB, 155. Landesborough, William, the Australian explorer, 320. Lane, Sir Ralph, the first governor of Virginia, 7. Launceston, Tasmania, 238. Lawson, the Australian explorer, .305. Ijeichhardt, Dr, the Australian explorer, 294, 313. Loudon, Canada West, 126, 147. ; ". liusliington. Lieutenant, the Australian explorer, 308. MACARTiirR. John, "the father of New South Wales," 213, 214. 222, 223. Slacartnoy, the Earl of, in Capo Colony, 160. M'Donald, Sir Richanl, governor of South Australia, 270, 271. JI'Kinlay. John, the Australian explorer, 320. M'Leay, Alexander, in South Wales, 253, 254. iSI'Nab, Lieutenant-Colonel, his suppression of the Toronto insur- rection in 1837. 122. Macquario, General, governor of New Soiith Wales, 213, 214. 217, 219. Macquarie River, 217, 306. Slalabars, the, of Ceylon, 190. Malacca, 191. Manoa, the Golden City of, 57. Maoris, the, of New Zealand, 200-202. 324-363. Marlborough, the Earl of, first owner of Barbados, 20. Marll)orough, New Zealand, 344. Maroons, the, of Jamaica, 31, 32, 40, 45-47. iMar.iden, Mr, and later missionaries in New Zealand, 327, 328, 334, 335, 339, 346, 348, 351, 352, 353, 362. Mav, Honrv, his visit to the Bahamas, 53. Melbourne,' 219, 248, 249, 256, 257, 258, 278. 280, 281, 282-284. INDKX. 407 Metcalf, Sir Charles, governor of Canada, 124. Mississippi, French and English quaiTols concoming the, 88, 89, 91. Mitchell, Sir Thomas, the Australian explorer, 230,245, 24G, 294, 308. Montmorency Falls, Canada, 145. Montreal, 82, 8,S. 87, 90, 96, 107-109, 112, 118, 127, 145, 146, 147. Moonta Copper Mines, South Australia, 271. Moors, the, of Ceylon, 190. Moreton Bay, Queensland, 292-294. Morgan. Sir Henry, the buccaneer. 37-39. Mount Alexander Gold Fields, Victoria, 279. Murchison, Sir Roderick, the gold discoveries in Australia antioipatod by, 278. Murray, Lieutenant, his discoveiT of Port Phillip, 243. Murray River, Australia, 230. 245, 271, 306-308. Murrumbidgee River, Australia, 254, 256, 30G. Xapiek, New Zealand, 344. Natal, its early history and Kaffir inhabitants, 175-177 : Dutch inter- course with it, 177, 178; its colonization by Lieutenant Fair- well (1823), 178, 179 ; its second colonization (1835), 179; its later history, 180 ; its present condition and resources, 181-183, 387. Nelson, New Zealand, 344. New Brunswick, its early history, 100 ; its progress, 101-104 ; its present condition and resouixes, 143, 144; its value as an emi- gration field, 384, 385. Newcastle, New Brunswick, fire at, in 1825, 102-104. Newcastle Coal-Field, New South Wales, 298. Newfoundland, discovered by John Cabot in 1497, 5, 68 ; early fishing expeditions to, 6, 68, 69 ; Sir Humphrey Gilbert's attempted colonization of, in 1583, 7, 69 ; the first regular settlements in, 69, 70 ; the quan-els between the fishers and the colonists, 71, 72 ; French and English struggles for possession of the island, 72- 75 ; its pi'ogress since 1715, 75-77; the cod-fisheries, 76, 78-80; seal-hunting, 77, 78. New South Wales, Captain Cook's visits to the site of the colony, 203-206 ; its appropriation as a convict settlement, 208 ; the first planting of convicts at Port Jackson under Captain Phillip (1787-1792), 209, 210; its convict population, 210-212 ; its early governors. 211, 213; General Macquarie's government (1810- 1821), 213, 214, 218; progress of the colony from 1787 to 1821, 209, 213, 217, 218, 219; from 1821 to 1839,220, 223, 228,229; Sir Thomas Brisbane's government (1822-1825), 219, 2i;6; its bush-rangers, 220 ; its reformed convicts, 220-222 ; John Macai-thur and the wool-trade, 213, 223 ; its free and convict population in 1829, 224-226 ; Sir Ralph Darling's government (1826-1831), 226; political reforms, 226, 227; Sir Richard Bourke's government (1831-1838), 227, 228, 250; Sir George Gipps's government, 250 ; squatters in, 251-256 ; its progress from 1839 to 1851, 256; its political re-oi'ganization, 250; 408 INDEX. Sydney in 1848, 258, 259 ; progress of tho colony after the separation of Victoria from it, 289, 290 ; the gold discoveries, 277, 278 ; their effect, 277, 290-292 ; tho establishment of Queensland as an independent colony, 292, 295 ; later progress of New South Wales, 297 ; its coal, 297 ; condition and prospects of the colony, 298, 36G. New Westminster, British Columbia, 151. New Zealand, its early inhabitants, 323 ; Captain Cook's visits, 200-202, 206 ; early English intercoui-se with it, 32-t ; the mas- sacre of the crew of the Boyd (1809), 325-327 ; missionary work in it, 327, 328, 333-335, 346 ; tho first traders and their in- fluences, 327, 328-333 ; the character of the Maoris, 335-337 ; the beginning of English colonization, 338 ; the New Zealand Company, 339, 340, 342, 343, 344 ; establishment of tho colony (1839, 1840), 339-342 ; Captain Hobson's rule as first governor (1840-1842), 341-345 ; growth of the white population, 343, 344, 347 ; the nine provinces of New Zealand, 344, 345 ; its com- mercial progress, 347 ; tho gradual displacement of its Maori inhabitants, 346, 348-350, 353; Colonel Wakefield's aggression in 1843 and its consequences, 350-352 ; Sir George Grey's government, 345, 352, 353 ; rise of the King-movement, 3.53- 356 ; the disturbances of 1860, 353 ; warfare between 1862 and 1869, 355-360 ; the Hau-Hau superstition, 3()0-362 ; the dying out of the Maoris, 362, 363 ; its present condition and prospects, 363, 367. Niagara, 90, 117, 146. Nicholson, General, first governor of Nova Scotia, 97. Norfolk Island, 233. North Australia, 315-317, 366. Nova Scotia, colonized by the French (1604), 82, 83, 97 ; conquered by the English (1614), 85, 97 ; retaken by the French (1667), 97 ; finally transferred to the English (1713), 89, 97; its early French inhabitants — their expulsion in 1755 and return, 97-100; its progress as an English colony, 100, 101 ; its present condi- tion and resources, 141-143, 385. Osborne, Captain Henry, first governor of Newfoundland, 75. Otago, New Zealand, 344, 347. Ottawa, Canada West, 127, 147. Oxley, the Australian explorer, 217, 292, 306. Parametta, New South Wales, 21 7. Penang, 191. Perth, Western Australia, 302. PhilUp, Captain Arthur, first Governor of New South Waloa, 209, 210, 214. Pitch Lake of Trinidad, 59. Port Elizabeth, 171, 173. Port Essington, 313. Port Jackson, 209, 217, 219, 298. INDEX. 409 Port Macquarie, 219. Port Natal, 176, 180. Port Phillip, 216, 219, 243, .306. Port Phillip District. See Victoria, Australia. Port Royal, Jainaicra, a buccaneer haunt in the 17th century, 37, 39. 40; destroyed by an earthquake in 1692, 40-42, 64. Portland Bay, Victoria, 245. Prince Edward's Island, its history, 105 ; its present condition. 140, 141. Quebec, 82, 83, 85, 86, 90, 93-96, 106, 108, 112, 127, 145, 147. Queensland, its early exploration, 292-294 ; its separation from New South Wales and establishment as a separate colony, (1859), 295 ; its progress and prospects, 295, 296, 297, 3G6, 387-389. Raffles, Sir Stamford, capture of Singapore by, 191. Raleigh, Sir Walter, his attempted colonization of Virginia, 7, 8 ; and his expeditions to Guiana, 57, 58. Red River Settlement, the, 136, 148. Ristigouche River, Now Brunswick, 144. Rockhampton, Queensland, 296. Sable Islakd, North America, 82. Saint Christopher, or St Kitts, first colonized by the English, 20, 21 Saint George's Sound, Australia, 309. Saint Lawrence, Gulf and River of, 81, 82, 87, 90, 107, 139, 144-146. Sandhurst, Victoria, 284. Sarawak, 195, 196. Saskatchewan, the site for a new colony, 148. Seal-hunting, Newfoundland, 77, 78. Selwyn, Bishop, in New Zealand, 351. Shirley, Sir Anthony, his visit to Jamaica, 31. Sierra Leone, 153-155. Singapore, 191, 192. Singhalese, the, 189. Slaves, African, in Barbados, 25, 27, 28 ; in Jamaica, 31, 39, 40, 44-52, 65; in Antigua, 55; in Gape Colony, 158-161, 170, 171. Slaves, Caribbean, in the West Indies, 19, 20, 29, 30. Slaves, English, in Barbados, 24, 25. Smith, Sir Harry, in Cape Colony, 168, 169, 171, 172. Somers, Sir George, his visits to the Bermudas, 53. Somei-aet, Lord Charles, governor of Cape Colony, 165. South Australia, its discoveiy, 260, 261 ; its colonization on the Wakefield scheme (1836), 261, 262; its first governors, Captain Hindmarsh and Colonel Gawler, and its early troubles (1836- 1841), 262-264; its improved condition under Captain Grey (1841-1845), 264-266; and Sir Henry Young (1848-1854), 267- 270; its copper and lead mines, 265-267, 271, 272; effects of the gold discoveries. 267-270; its progress under Sir Richard M'Donald (1853-1862), 270, 271 ; its wool trade, 265, 272; its 410 INDEX. whojit trado. 2Cm, 273; its wino trade, 273, 274; its present con- dition, 27+. 27.5, ;JOf). Southland, Now Zealand, .344. Spanish Town, .Iiiinaica. 30. SquattorR. Australiiin. 2ri2-2.")(;. Stuart, John M-Douall, the Australian e.xploror, 313-318. Sturt, Capi,uii!, the AuHtralian explorer, 22!), 260, 2G1, 30C-30S, 313, 314. Stockonstroni, Mr, in Capo Colony, 163, 164. Straits Sottlomcnts. the, 1!)1, 192. Strzelecki, Count, his discovery of gold in Australia, 277. Sugar, Jamaica, 43. Swan River, WeKtora Australia, 29i)-302. Sydney, New South Wales, 20U, 213, 217, 218, 224-226, 244, 2.58, 2.59, 289, 291, 298, 30.5. Taranaki. New Zealand, 344, 355, 356, 357. Tasmania, its discovery, 198; Captain Cook's visit to it, 206; its insularity proved by Bass and Flinders, 215 ; its adoption and early progress as a convict scttlemont, 234, 235 ; its bush- rangers, 235-238 ; its rofonnation and growth, 238, 240 ; its governors — Sir George Arthur, 235-238 ; Sir John Franklin. 239 ; its progress and present condition, 240-242, 367, 388. Te Ranga, New Zealand, 359. Thomson, Mr Charles Poulctt, governor of Canada, 124. Timber, British North American, 140-142, 144-147. Toronto, 118, 122, 125, 126, 146, 147. Torrens, Lake. Australia, 309, 314, 321, 322. Trinidad, its history and present condition, 56-60. Tufton, Sir William, governor of Barbados, 21. United States of America, the. their commencement and earlv historv, 7, 8, 10-13 ; their Canadian wars, 91-96, 107-109, 116"- 119. Vancouver Island, its earlv history, 136, 137 ; its formation as a colony (1848), 137, 149'; its union with British Cohunbia (1866), 137 ; its condition and resources, 148-152, 385. Van Dieman's Land. See Tasmania. Vaughan. Lord John, governor of Jamaica, 39. Veddas. the, of Ceylon, 189. Venables, General, conquest of Jamaica by, in 1655, 31, 36. Verazzano, Giovanni, exploration of North America by, 81. Victoria, or the Port Phillip District, Austi-alia, its discovery, 243; its colonization attempted (1803), and early settlements in, 244, 245 ; Mitchell's visits to, 230, 245, 246 ; William Buckley's wan- derings in, 246-248; its formal occupation under Sir Richard Bourke, 249 ; its early progress as a province of New South Wales, 249-251, 256, 257; Melbourne in 1838, 257,258; its establishment as an independent colony (1851), 276, 277; the gold discoveries, 278, 279; their effects on the colony, 279-282; INDEX. 411 its rocont proffrnss, 282, 283 ; tbo prowth of Moll)oumo, 28,1, 284; tho Biillarat outbvoak (18r)4). 28r)-2H7: political chaniroi in Victoria, 2«", 2S,H ; it« present condition, 3(JG, 387. 38'J, 3'JO Victoria, Honjf Konp, 1!»2, l',);i. Victoria, Vancouver Inland, 14.H, l.")0, l.")l. Victoria Ijake, South Australia. 2flil, 201. Victoria Kivt-r, North AuKtralia, 2'.l4. Wages, rates of, in tho principal colonies, 395. Wailiato. Now Zealand, 357-351). Waimati, Now Zealand, 334. Waitara. New Zealand. 355, 350. Wakeiield, Colonol, in Now Zealand, .330. 350. Wakofiold Scheme of Colonization, tho, in .South Australia. 2C1-264 ; in Now Zealand, 331), 340. 342, 343. 344. Walker, Frederick, tho Australian explorer, 320. W^allaroo Copper Mines. South Australia, 271, 272. Wangaroa. Now Zealand, 325, 32«. 328. Warner, Sir Thomas, colonizer of Antigua, 55. Wellington, New Zealand, 344. Wontworth, the Australian explorer, 305. West Indies, our colonies in tho, 15-67. (See rtames of Island'!.) Western Australia, its early explor.ations, 229 ; its unfortunate colonization (1829-1832), 300-302 ; its subsequent progress, 302- 305 ; its convicts, 303, 304 ; its present condition, 365. Willoughby of Parham, Lord, governor of Barbados, 22-26 ; hia roconquest of Antigua, 55. Wills. William .John, the Australian explorer, 317-320. Wolfo, General J.ames, his capture of Cape Breton, 93 ; his siege of Quebec and death, 93-96. Wool, South African, 173, 181 ; Australian, 213, 217, 223, 224, 229, 252-256, 26,5, 272, 295 ; New Zealand, 347. Yorke's Peninsula, South Australia, 271, 272. Young, Sir Henry, goveraor of South Australia, 270. Commercial Printing Company, Edinburgh. IfEW BOOKS. " Mit Gott fiir Konig und Vatcrland.' BISMARCK'S BOOK. In one vol., large 8vo, 16s., THE LIFE OF COUNT BISMARCK: PRIVATE AND POLITICAL. WITH DESCRIPTIVE NOTICES OF HIS ANCESTRY. By DR GEORGE HESEKIEL. Trasslated by KENNETH R. H. MACKENZIE, F.S.A., F.A.S.L.. Translator of "Leipsius's Letters from Egypt," and Co-Translator of " Humboldt's Correspondence with Varuhagen vob Ense," Sc. WITH UPWARDS OF One Hundred Illustrations by Diez, Grimm, Pietsch, and others. PRELIMINARY ANNOUNCEMENT. This work contains a complete and trustworthy account of the personal and political career of Count Otto von Bismarck, the distinguished Premier of Prussia. It has been carefully prepared from authentic documents by Dr George Hesekiel, the well-known German auttior, and is profusely illustrated by eminent Gennan artists. In its English form, the tran.slator has endeavoured to preserve the spirit of the German original, and render it an acceptable and standard historical work. Some notes of an explanatory cnaracter have also been added where it appeared advisable, with notices of the principal noble families whose members were coadjutors or opponents of Bismarck. The arrangement of the work comprises an account of Schonhausen, the birth-place and family mansion of Count Bis- marck. In the second part, an historical sketch of his ancestry is presented, together with a description of the armorial bearings of the family. Tlien follows the historj- of his early youth and education, with the commencement of his political life at Frankfurt and Paris. The later portions of the work contain his political and private correspondence— almost forming an autobiography — and refer to those measures which have rendered him so celebrated throughout the European continent. The stirring events of the Danish and Austrian campaigns, culminating in so remarkable a triumph for Prussia and North Germany, will be found in the concluding part. Dr Hesekiel has approached the subject with a spirit of candour, mingled with due admiration for the acts of this remarkable man. In fcap. 8vo, cloth, price 2s. 6d., A HANDY BOOK OF REFERENCE AND QUOTATION. MOTTOES AND APHORISMS FROM SHAKESPERE. A Selection of nearly Two Thousand Seven Hundred Mottoes and Aphorisms from Shakespere, with a copious Index of upwards of Nine Thousand References to words and ideas. The whole is numbered and arranged alphabetically, so that any word or idea can be traced at once, and the correct quotation (with tlie name of the play, act, and scene) given without going further. This is not simply a key to Shakespere, but a book which it is believed will be found gene- rally useful for quotation and reference. LONDON : JAMES HOGG & SON, York Street, Covent Garden, W.C. NEW BOOKS. In feap. 8vo, cloth, price 2s. 6(1., THE RULES OF RHYME: A GHJIDE TO VERSIFICATION. W/TU A COMl'ENDWUS DICTIONARY OF RHYMES. By TOM HOOD. This guide' to Engli.sli Vei'siflcation will give the strict rules and correct riiynics for that style of composition, toucliing upon tlie peculiar requisites of song-writing, and the necessities of comic and burlesque verse. The Dictionary of Rhymes will distinguish between such words as are admissible in serious verse ; such as, being archaic and 8hake.sperean, will be only available for ex- ceptional use ; and those which will simply answer the purpose of comic verse. Cla-ssieal measures will be examined, with a view to their adaptability to English verse, taking into consideration the relations of quantity and accent. In one vol., crown Svo, 'THE NATURAL HISTORY ANECDOTE-BOOK: • * ILLUSTRATIVE OP INSTINCT AND SAGACITY IN THE ANIMATED KINGDOM. Witknumerous Woodcuts of Animals, Birds, Insects, Reptiles, dc. In this book will be found a most varied and«interesting collection of Anec- dotes in Natural History— perhaps the most comprehensive collection ever drawn together. Besides attbrding instructive, and in many instances humor- ous, reading on one of the most ple:isant subjects to which the attention of both old and young can be profitably directed, the aim has been to show how much lies within the power of all— in a way and in quarters not generally thought of — to shed abroad the cheering influences which sympathy and kind, ness cannot fail to impart. In no better way, it was considered, could this be etlected than by drawing together well-authenticated instances of the Remark- able Habits, the Natural Peculiarities, and the Mysterious Existences, trac - able in greater or lesser degrees through all classes of Animal Creation. THE SHORT OR EASY WORD SERIES. Demy square ICmo, THE SWALLOWS OP LEIGH FARM : A STORY FOR CHILDREN. By the Editor of " The Book of Children's Hymns and Rhymes." WITH TWELVE ILLUSTRATIONS. PICCIOLA; Ok, The Prison Flower, and the Lessons it Taught. By the Rev. F. W. BOUVERIE, Author of "Short Stories for Short People," ikc. WITH ILLUSTRATIONS. others of this Series in preparation. LONDON : JAMES HOGG & SON York St., Covent Garden, W.C. BOOKS RECENTLY PUBLISHED. New Work by the Rev. Prebendary Jackson. CURIOSITIES OF THE PULPIT AND PULPIT LITERATURE: Memorabilia, Anecdotes, &c., of celebrated Preachers from the Fourth Century of the Christian Era to the present time. By THOMAS JACKSON, M.A., Prebendary of St Paul's Cathedral, and Rector of Stoke Newington, London. In the novel and attractive black and gold bindiug, gilt top, price 5s. New Work by the Eev. T. Pelham Dale, M.A. A LIFE'S MOTTO. Illustrated by Biographical Examples. • " Whatsoever thy hand findeth to do, do It with thy might." I. Augustine, Bishop of Hippo — Faith's '•great Victory over Heathenism. t II. Beenakd, the Monk — Faith amidst the dark Clouds of Medimval Superstition. III. Wesley, the Methodist — Faith aro\ising the slumbering Church. IV. John Newton, the Converted Slave-Drivkh— Faith victorious over blaspheming Atheism. V. Chakles Simeon : the Despised Exalted — Faith patient in Well-doing. VI. Henry Kiiike White — Faith not striving lawfully. VII. Edward Irving, the Enthusiast — Fccith in Credulity. Via. Henry Martyn and Charles Frederick Mackenzie, the Martyr Missionaries — Faith loving not Life unto Death. IX. An Epilogue of Contrasts. With a Frontispiece by J. D. Watson. In the novel and attractive black and gold binding, gilt top, price 5s. The Christian Life of the Present Day. New and Cheaper Edition. THE PATH ON EARTH TO THE GATE OF HEAVEN. Essays of Counsel and Encouragement for the Christian Life of the Present Day. By the Rev. FREDERICK ARNOLD, of Christ Church, Oxford. With a Frontispiece. In the novel and attractive black and gold binding, gilt edges, price 3s. 6d. LONDON: JAMES HOGG & SON, York St., Covent Gurdeii, W.C. BOOKS RECENTLY PUBLISHED. NEW WORK BY H. R. FOX BOURNE. FAMOUS LONDON MERCHANTS, With Portraits of George Peabody, Sir Richard Whittington, Sir Thomas Gresham, Sir Hugh Myddelton, Sir Joseph Child, Paterson, Founder of the Bank of England, Coutts, the Banker, and 17 other Illustrations. By H. R. fox BOURNE, Author of " Merchant Princes of England," &c. In the novel and attractive black and gold binding, gilt edges, price 3s. 6d. QAPTAIN PENNY, THE VETERAN WHALER. ADVENTURES IN THE ICE: A comprehensive- Stimfnary of Arctic Exploration, Discovery, and Adventure, including Experiences of Captain Penny, the Veteran Whaler, now first pmlished. With Portraits of Sir John Franklin, Captain Penny, Dr Elisha Kent Kane, Dr Isaac I. Hayes, and 14 other Illustrations. By JOHN TILLOTSON. In the novel and attractive black and gold binding, gilt edges, price 3s. 6d. THE WORLD'S PROGRESS. PIONEERS OF CIVILIZATION. By the Author of " Lives of Eminent Men," &c. Chap. I. The Soldier Pioneer, II. Pioneers of Enteri'rise AND Daring. III. Exploring Pioneers. Chap. IV. Peaceful Pioneers. v. Trading Pioneers. VI. Settling Pioneers. VII. The Pioneers of Faith. With Portraits of Dr Livingstone, Captain Clapperton, William Penn, Captain Cook, Lord Robert Clive, Cajitain Flinders, Rev. Henry Martyn, and 10 other Page Illustrations. In the novel and attractive black and gold binding, gilt edges, price 3s. 6d. LONDON; JAMES HOGG & SON, York St., Covent Garden, W.C. S; * v**^ ^ "■'^. '^ - - ',> ■X